diff options
Diffstat (limited to '1183-0.txt')
| -rw-r--r-- | 1183-0.txt | 9017 |
1 files changed, 9017 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/1183-0.txt b/1183-0.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..76bbc9e --- /dev/null +++ b/1183-0.txt @@ -0,0 +1,9017 @@ +*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 1183 *** + +THE RETURN OF DR. FU-MANCHU + +By Sax Rohmer + + + + +CHAPTER I. A MIDNIGHT SUMMONS + + +“When did you last hear from Nayland Smith?” asked my visitor. + +I paused, my hand on the syphon, reflecting for a moment. + +“Two months ago,” I said; “he’s a poor correspondent and rather soured, +I fancy.” + +“What--a woman or something?” + +“Some affair of that sort. He’s such a reticent beggar, I really know +very little about it.” + +I placed a whisky and soda before the Rev. J. D. Eltham, also sliding +the tobacco jar nearer to his hand. The refined and sensitive face of +the clergy-man offered no indication of the truculent character of the +man. His scanty fair hair, already gray over the temples, was silken and +soft-looking; in appearance he was indeed a typical English churchman; +but in China he had been known as “the fighting missionary,” and had +fully deserved the title. In fact, this peaceful-looking gentleman had +directly brought about the Boxer Risings! + +“You know,” he said, in his clerical voice, but meanwhile stuffing +tobacco into an old pipe with fierce energy, “I have often wondered, +Petrie--I have never left off wondering--” + +“What?” + +“That accursed Chinaman! Since the cellar place beneath the site of the +burnt-out cottage in Dulwich Village--I have wondered more than ever.” + +He lighted his pipe and walked to the hearth to throw the match in the +grate. + +“You see,” he continued, peering across at me in his oddly nervous way, +“one never knows, does one? If I thought that Dr. Fu-Manchu lived; if +I seriously suspected that that stupendous intellect, that wonderful +genius, Petrie, er--” he hesitated characteristically--“survived, I +should feel it my duty--” + +“Well?” I said, leaning my elbows on the table and smiling slightly. + +“If that Satanic genius were not indeed destroyed, then the peace of the +world, may be threatened anew at any moment!” + +He was becoming excited, shooting out his jaw in the truculent manner I +knew, and snapping his fingers to emphasize his words; a man composed of +the oddest complexities that ever dwelt beneath a clerical frock. + +“He may have got back to China, Doctor!” he cried, and his eyes had the +fighting glint in them. “Could you rest in peace if you thought that he +lived? Should you not fear for your life every time that a night-call +took you out alone? Why, man alive, it is only two years since he was +here among us, since we were searching every shadow for those awful +green eyes! What became of his band of assassins--his stranglers, his +dacoits, his damnable poisons and insects and what-not--the army of +creatures--” + +He paused, taking a drink. + +“You--” he hesitated diffidently--“searched in Egypt with Nayland Smith, +did you not?” + +I nodded. + +“Contradict me if I am wrong,” he continued; “but my impression is that +you were searching for the girl--the girl--Karamaneh, I think she was +called?” + +“Yes,” I replied shortly; “but we could find no trace--no trace.” + +“You--er--were interested?” + +“More than I knew,” I replied, “until I realized that I had--lost her.” + +“I never met Karamaneh, but from your account, and from others, she was +quite unusually--” + +“She was very beautiful,” I said, and stood up, for I was anxious to +terminate that phase of the conversation. + +Eltham regarded me sympathetically; he knew something of my search with +Nayland Smith for the dark-eyed, Eastern girl who had brought romance +into my drab life; he knew that I treasured my memories of her as I +loathed and abhorred those of the fiendish, brilliant Chinese doctor who +had been her master. + +Eltham began to pace up and down the rug, his pipe bubbling furiously; +and something in the way he carried his head reminded me momentarily of +Nayland Smith. Certainly, between this pink-faced clergyman, with his +deceptively mild appearance, and the gaunt, bronzed, and steely-eyed +Burmese commissioner, there was externally little in common; but it was +some little nervous trick in his carriage that conjured up through the +smoky haze one distant summer evening when Smith had paced that very +room as Eltham paced it now, when before my startled eyes he had rung up +the curtain upon the savage drama in which, though I little suspected it +then, Fate had cast me for a leading role. + +I wondered if Eltham’s thoughts ran parallel with mine. My own were +centered upon the unforgettable figure of the murderous Chinaman. These +words, exactly as Smith had used them, seemed once again to sound in my +ears: “Imagine a person tall, lean, and feline, high shouldered, with a +brow like Shakespeare and a face like Satan, a close-shaven skull, and +long magnetic eyes of the true cat green. Invest him with all the cruel +cunning of an entire Eastern race accumulated in one giant intellect, +with all the resources of science, past and present, and you have a +mental picture of Dr. Fu-Manchu, the ‘Yellow Peril’ incarnate in one +man.” + +This visit of Eltham’s no doubt was responsible for my mood; for this +singular clergyman had played his part in the drama of two years ago. + +“I should like to see Smith again,” he said suddenly; “it seems a pity +that a man like that should be buried in Burma. Burma makes a mess of +the best of men, Doctor. You said he was not married?” + +“No,” I replied shortly, “and is never likely to be, now.” + +“Ah, you hinted at something of the kind.” + +“I know very little of it. Nayland Smith is not the kind of man to talk +much.” + +“Quite so--quite so! And, you know, Doctor, neither am I; but”--he was +growing painfully embarrassed--“it may be your due--I--er--I have a +correspondent, in the interior of China--” + +“Well?” I said, watching him in sudden eagerness. + +“Well, I would not desire to raise--vain hopes--nor to occasion, shall +I say, empty fears; but--er... no, Doctor!” He flushed like a girl--“It +was wrong of me to open this conversation. Perhaps, when I know +more--will you forget my words, for the time?” + +The telephone bell rang. + +“Hullo!” cried Eltham--“hard luck, Doctor!”--but I could see that he +welcomed the interruption. “Why!” he added, “it is one o’clock!” + +I went to the telephone. + +“Is that Dr. Petrie?” inquired a woman’s voice. + +“Yes; who is speaking?” + +“Mrs. Hewett has been taken more seriously ill. Could you come at once?” + +“Certainly,” I replied, for Mrs. Hewett was not only a profitable +patient but an estimable lady--“I shall be with you in a quarter of an +hour.” + +I hung up the receiver. + +“Something urgent?” asked Eltham, emptying his pipe. + +“Sounds like it. You had better turn in.” + +“I should much prefer to walk over with you, if it would not be +intruding. Our conversation has ill prepared me for sleep.” + +“Right!” I said; for I welcomed his company; and three minutes later we +were striding across the deserted common. + +A sort of mist floated amongst the trees, seeming in the moonlight like +a veil draped from trunk to trunk, as in silence we passed the Mound +pond, and struck out for the north side of the common. + +I suppose the presence of Eltham and the irritating recollection of his +half-confidence were the responsible factors, but my mind persistently +dwelt upon the subject of Fu-Manchu and the atrocities which he had +committed during his sojourn in England. So actively was my imagination +at work that I felt again the menace which so long had hung over me; I +felt as though that murderous yellow cloud still cast its shadow upon +England. And I found myself longing for the company of Nayland Smith. +I cannot state what was the nature of Eltham’s reflections, but I can +guess; for he was as silent as I. + +It was with a conscious effort that I shook myself out of this morbidly +reflective mood, on finding that we had crossed the common and were come +to the abode of my patient. + +“I shall take a little walk,” announced Eltham; “for I gather that you +don’t expect to be detained long? I shall never be out of sight of the +door, of course.” + +“Very well,” I replied, and ran up the steps. + +There were no lights to be seen in any of the windows, which +circumstance rather surprised me, as my patient occupied, or had +occupied when last I had visited her, a first-floor bedroom in the front +of the house. My knocking and ringing produced no response for three or +four minutes; then, as I persisted, a scantily clothed and half +awake maid servant unbarred the door and stared at me stupidly in the +moonlight. + +“Mrs. Hewett requires me?” I asked abruptly. + +The girl stared more stupidly than ever. + +“No, sir,” she said, “she don’t, sir; she’s fast asleep!” + +“But some one ‘phoned me!” I insisted, rather irritably, I fear. + +“Not from here, sir,” declared the now wide-eyed girl. “We haven’t got a +telephone, sir.” + +For a few moments I stood there, staring as foolishly as she; then +abruptly I turned and descended the steps. At the gate I stood looking +up and down the road. The houses were all in darkness. What could be the +meaning of the mysterious summons? I had made no mistake respecting the +name of my patient; it had been twice repeated over the telephone; yet +that the call had not emanated from Mrs. Hewett’s house was now palpably +evident. Days had been when I should have regarded the episode as +preluding some outrage, but to-night I felt more disposed to ascribe it +to a silly practical joke. + +Eltham walked up briskly. + +“You’re in demand to-night, Doctor,” he said. “A young person called +for you almost directly you had left your house, and, learning where you +were gone, followed you.” + +“Indeed!” I said, a trifle incredulously. “There are plenty of other +doctors if the case is an urgent one.” + +“She may have thought it would save time as you were actually up and +dressed,” explained Eltham; “and the house is quite near to here, I +understand.” + +I looked at him a little blankly. Was this another effort of the unknown +jester? + +“I have been fooled once,” I said. “That ‘phone call was a hoax--” + +“But I feel certain,” declared Eltham, earnestly, “that this is genuine! +The poor girl was dreadfully agitated; her master has broken his leg and +is lying helpless: number 280, Rectory Grove.” + +“Where is the girl?” I asked, sharply. + +“She ran back directly she had given me her message.” + +“Was she a servant?” + +“I should imagine so: French, I think. But she was so wrapped up I had +little more than a glimpse of her. I am sorry to hear that some one has +played a silly joke on you, but believe me--” he was very earnest--“this +is no jest. The poor girl could scarcely speak for sobs. She mistook me +for you, of course.” + +“Oh!” said I grimly, “well, I suppose I must go. Broken leg, you +said?--and my surgical bag, splints and so forth, are at home!” + +“My dear Petrie!” cried Eltham, in his enthusiastic way--“you no doubt +can do something to alleviate the poor man’s suffering immediately. I +will run back to your rooms for the bag and rejoin you at 280, Rectory +Grove.” + +“It’s awfully good of you, Eltham--” + +He held up his hand. + +“The call of suffering humanity, Petrie, is one which I may no more +refuse to hear than you.” + +I made no further protest after that, for his point of view was evident +and his determination adamant, but told him where he would find the +bag and once more set out across the moonbright common, he pursuing a +westerly direction and I going east. + +Some three hundred yards I had gone, I suppose, and my brain had been +very active the while, when something occurred to me which placed a new +complexion upon this second summons. I thought of the falsity of the +first, of the improbability of even the most hardened practical joker +practising his wiles at one o’clock in the morning. I thought of our +recent conversation; above all I thought of the girl who had delivered +the message to Eltham, the girl whom he had described as a French +maid--whose personal charm had so completely enlisted his sympathies. +Now, to this train of thought came a new one, and, adding it, my +suspicion became almost a certainty. + +I remembered (as, knowing the district, I should have remembered before) +that there was no number 280 in Rectory Grove. + +Pulling up sharply I stood looking about me. Not a living soul was +in sight; not even a policeman. Where the lamps marked the main paths +across the common nothing moved; in the shadows about me nothing +stirred. But something stirred within me--a warning voice which for long +had lain dormant. + +What was afoot? + +A breeze caressed the leaves overhead, breaking the silence with +mysterious whisperings. Some portentous truth was seeking for admittance +to my brain. I strove to reassure myself, but the sense of impending +evil and of mystery became heavier. At last I could combat my strange +fears no longer. I turned and began to run toward the south side of the +common--toward my rooms--and after Eltham. + +I had hoped to head him off, but came upon no sign of him. An all-night +tramcar passed at the moment that I reached the high road, and as I ran +around behind it I saw that my windows were lighted and that there was a +light in the hall. + +My key was yet in the lock when my housekeeper opened the door. + +“There’s a gentleman just come, Doctor,” she began-- + +I thrust past her and raced up the stairs into my study. + +Standing by the writing-table was a tall, thin man, his gaunt face brown +as a coffee-berry and his steely gray eyes fixed upon me. My heart gave +a great leap--and seemed to stand still. + +It was Nayland Smith! + +“Smith,” I cried. “Smith, old man, by God, I’m glad to see you!” + +He wrung my hand hard, looking at me with his searching eyes; but there +was little enough of gladness in his face. He was altogether grayer than +when last I had seen him--grayer and sterner. + +“Where is Eltham?” I asked. + +Smith started back as though I had struck him. + +“Eltham!” he whispered--“Eltham! is Eltham here?” + +“I left him ten minutes ago on the common--” + +Smith dashed his right fist into the palm of his left hand and his eyes +gleamed almost wildly. + +“My God, Petrie!” he said, “am I fated always to come too late?” + +My dreadful fears in that instant were confirmed. I seemed to feel my +legs totter beneath me. + +“Smith, you don’t mean--” + +“I do, Petrie!” His voice sounded very far away. “Fu-Manchu is here; and +Eltham, God help him... is his first victim!” + + + +CHAPTER II. ELTHAM VANISHES + +Smith went racing down the stairs like a man possessed. Heavy with such +a foreboding of calamity as I had not known for two years, I followed +him--along the hall and out into the road. The very peace and beauty of +the night in some way increased my mental agitation. The sky was lighted +almost tropically with such a blaze of stars as I could not recall to +have seen since, my futile search concluded, I had left Egypt. The glory +of the moonlight yellowed the lamps speckled across the expanse of +the common. The night was as still as night can ever be in London. The +dimming pulse of a cab or car alone disturbed the stillness. + +With a quick glance to right and left, Smith ran across on to the +common, and, leaving the door wide open behind me, I followed. The path +which Eltham had pursued terminated almost opposite to my house. One’s +gaze might follow it, white and empty, for several hundred yards past +the pond, and further, until it became overshadowed and was lost amid a +clump of trees. + +I came up with Smith, and side by side we ran on, whilst pantingly, I +told my tale. + +“It was a trick to get you away from him!” cried Smith. “They meant no +doubt to make some attempt at your house, but as he came out with you, +an alternative plan--” + +Abreast of the pond, my companion slowed down, and finally stopped. + +“Where did you last see Eltham?” he asked rapidly. + +I took his arm, turning him slightly to the right, and pointed across +the moonbathed common. + +“You see that clump of bushes on the other side of the road?” I said. +“There’s a path to the left of it. I took that path and he took this. We +parted at the point where they meet--” + +Smith walked right down to the edge of the water and peered about over +the surface. + +What he hoped to find there I could not imagine. Whatever it had been he +was disappointed, and he turned to me again, frowning perplexedly, and +tugging at the lobe of his left ear, an old trick which reminded me of +gruesome things we had lived through in the past. + +“Come on,” he jerked. “It may be amongst the trees.” + +From the tone of his voice I knew that he was tensed up nervously, and +his mood but added to the apprehension of my own. + +“What may be amongst the trees, Smith?” I asked. + +He walked on. + +“God knows, Petrie; but I fear--” + +Behind us, along the highroad, a tramcar went rocking by, doubtless +bearing a few belated workers homeward. The stark incongruity of the +thing was appalling. How little those weary toilers, hemmed about +with the commonplace, suspected that almost within sight from the car +windows, in a place of prosy benches, iron railings, and unromantic, +flickering lamps, two fellow men moved upon the border of a horror-land! + +Beneath the trees a shadow carpet lay, its edges tropically sharp; and +fully ten yards from the first of the group, we two, hatless both, and +sharing a common dread, paused for a moment and listened. + +The car had stopped at the further extremity of the common, and now with +a moan that grew to a shriek was rolling on its way again. We stood +and listened until silence reclaimed the night. Not a footstep could be +heard. Then slowly we walked on. At the edge of the little coppice we +stopped again abruptly. + +Smith turned and thrust his pistol into my hand. A white ray of light +pierced the shadows; my companion carried an electric torch. But no +trace of Eltham was discoverable. + +There had been a heavy shower of rain during the evening just before +sunset, and although the open paths were dry again, under the trees +the ground was still moist. Ten yards within the coppice we came upon +tracks--the tracks of one running, as the deep imprints of the toes +indicated. + +Abruptly the tracks terminated; others, softer, joined them, two sets +converging from left and right. There was a confused patch, trailing off +to the west; then this became indistinct, and was finally lost upon the +hard ground outside the group. + +For perhaps a minute, or more, we ran about from tree to tree, and from +bush to bush, searching like hounds for a scent, and fearful of what we +might find. We found nothing; and fully in the moonlight we stood facing +one another. The night was profoundly still. + +Nayland Smith stepped back into the shadows, and began slowly to turn +his head from left to right, taking in the entire visible expanse of the +common. Toward a point where the road bisected it he stared intently. +Then, with a bound, he set off. + +“Come on, Petrie!” he cried. “There they are!” + +Vaulting a railing he went away over a field like a madman. Recovering +from the shock of surprise, I followed him, but he was well ahead of me, +and making for some vaguely seen object moving against the lights of the +roadway. + +Another railing was vaulted, and the corner of a second, triangular +grass patch crossed at a hot sprint. We were twenty yards from the road +when the sound of a starting motor broke the silence. We gained the +graveled footpath only to see the taillight of the car dwindling to the +north! + +Smith leaned dizzily against a tree. + +“Eltham is in that car!” he gasped. “Just God! are we to stand here and +see him taken away to--” + +He beat his fist upon the tree, in a sort of tragic despair. The nearest +cab-rank was no great distance away, but, excluding the possibility of +no cab being there, it might, for all practical purposes, as well have +been a mile off. + +The beat of the retreating motor was scarcely audible; the lights +might but just be distinguished. Then, coming in an opposite direction, +appeared the headlamp of another car, of a car that raced nearer and +nearer to us, so that, within a few seconds of its first appearance, we +found ourselves bathed in the beam of its headlights. + +Smith bounded out into the road, and stood, a weird silhouette, with +upraised arms, fully in its course! + +The brakes were applied hurriedly. It was a big limousine, and its +driver swerved perilously in avoiding Smith and nearly ran into me. +But, the breathless moment past, the car was pulled up, head on to the +railings; and a man in evening clothes was demanding excitedly what had +happened. Smith, a hatless, disheveled figure, stepped up to the door. + +“My name is Nayland Smith,” he said rapidly--“Burmese Commissioner.” He +snatched a letter from his pocket and thrust it into the hands of the +bewildered man. “Read that. It is signed by another Commissioner--the +Commissioner of Police.” + +With amazement written all over him, the other obeyed. + +“You see,” continued my friend, tersely--“it is carte blanche. I wish to +commandeer your car, sir, on a matter of life and death!”. + +The other returned the letter. + +“Allow me to offer it!” he said, descending. “My man will take your +orders. I can finish my journey by cab. I am--” + +But Smith did not wait to learn whom he might be. + +“Quick!” he cried to the stupefied chauffeur--“You passed a car a minute +ago--yonder. Can you overtake it?” + +“I can try, sir, if I don’t lose her track.” + +Smith leaped in, pulling me after him. + +“Do it!” he snapped. “There are no speed limits for me. Thanks! +Goodnight, sir!” + +We were off! The car swung around and the chase commenced. + +One last glimpse I had of the man we had dispossessed, standing alone by +the roadside, and at ever increasing speed, we leaped away in the track +of Eltham’s captors. + +Smith was too highly excited for ordinary conversation, but he threw out +short, staccato remarks. + +“I have followed Fu-Manchu from Hongkong,” he jerked. “Lost him at Suez. +He got here a boat ahead of me. Eltham has been corresponding with some +mandarin up-country. Knew that. Came straight to you. Only got in this +evening. He--Fu-Manchu--has been sent here to get Eltham. My God! and +he has him! He will question him! The interior of China--a seething +pot, Petrie! They had to stop the leakage of information. He is here for +that.” + +The car pulled up with a jerk that pitched me out of my seat, and the +chauffeur leaped to the road and ran ahead. Smith was out in a trice, as +the man, who had run up to a constable, came racing back. + +“Jump in, sir--jump in!” he cried, his eyes bright with the lust of the +chase; “they are making for Battersea!” + +And we were off again. + +Through the empty streets we roared on. A place of gasometers and +desolate waste lots slipped behind and we were in a narrow way where +gates of yards and a few lowly houses faced upon a prospect of high +blank wall. + +“Thames on our right,” said Smith, peering ahead. “His rathole is by the +river as usual. Hi!”--he grabbed up the speaking-tube--“Stop! Stop!” + +The limousine swung in to the narrow sidewalk, and pulled up close by a +yard gate. I, too, had seen our quarry--a long, low bodied car, showing +no inside lights. It had turned the next corner, where a street lamp +shone greenly, not a hundred yards ahead. + +Smith leaped out, and I followed him. + +“That must be a cul de sac,” he said, and turned to the eager-eyed +chauffeur. “Run back to that last turning,” he ordered, “and wait there, +out of sight. Bring the car up when you hear a police-whistle.” + +The man looked disappointed, but did not question the order. As he began +to back away, Smith grasped me by the arm and drew me forward. + +“We must get to that corner,” he said, “and see where the car stands, +without showing ourselves.” + + + +CHAPTER III. THE WIRE JACKET + +I suppose we were not more than a dozen paces from the lamp when we +heard the thudding of the motor. The car was backing out! + +It was a desperate moment, for it seemed that we could not fail to be +discovered. Nayland Smith began to look about him, feverishly, for a +hiding-place, a quest in which I seconded with equal anxiety. And Fate +was kind to us--doubly kind as after events revealed. A wooden gate +broke the expanse of wall hard by upon the right, and, as the result of +some recent accident, a ragged gap had been torn in the panels close to +the top. + +The chain of the padlock hung loosely; and in a second Smith was up, +with his foot in this as in a stirrup. He threw his arm over the top and +drew himself upright. A second later he was astride the broken gate. + +“Up you come, Petrie!” he said, and reached down his hand to aid me. + +I got my foot into the loop of chain, grasped at a projection in the +gatepost and found myself up. + +“There is a crossbar on this side to stand on,” said Smith. + +He climbed over and vanished in the darkness. I was still astride the +broken gate when the car turned the corner, slowly, for there was scanty +room; but I was standing upon the bar on the inside and had my head +below the gap ere the driver could possibly have seen me. + +“Stay where you are until he passes,” hissed my companion, below. “There +is a row of kegs under you.” + +The sound of the motor passing outside grew loud--louder--then began to +die away. I felt about with my left foot; discerned the top of a keg, +and dropped, panting, beside Smith. + +“Phew!” I said--“that was a close thing! Smith--how do we know--” + +“That we have followed the right car?” he interrupted. “Ask yourself the +question: what would any ordinary man be doing motoring in a place like +this at two o’clock in the morning?” + +“You are right, Smith,” I agreed. “Shall we get out again?” + +“Not yet. I have an idea. Look yonder.” + +He grasped my arm, turning me in the desired direction. + +Beyond a great expanse of unbroken darkness a ray of moonlight slanted +into the place wherein we stood, spilling its cold radiance upon rows of +kegs. + +“That’s another door,” continued my friend--I now began dimly to +perceive him beside me. “If my calculations are not entirely wrong, it +opens on a wharf gate--” + +A steam siren hooted dismally, apparently from quite close at hand. + +“I’m right!” snapped Smith. “That turning leads down to the gate. Come +on, Petrie!” + +He directed the light of the electric torch upon a narrow path through +the ranks of casks, and led the way to the further door. A good two feet +of moonlight showed along the top. I heard Smith straining; then-- + +“These kegs are all loaded with grease!” he said, “and I want to +reconnoiter over that door.” + +“I am leaning on a crate which seems easy to move,” I reported. “Yes, +it’s empty. Lend a hand.” + +We grasped the empty crate, and between us, set it up on a solid +pedestal of casks. Then Smith mounted to this observation platform and I +scrambled up beside him, and looked down upon the lane outside. + +It terminated as Smith had foreseen at a wharf gate some six feet to +the right of our post. Piled up in the lane beneath us, against the +warehouse door, was a stack of empty casks. Beyond, over the way, was a +kind of ramshackle building that had possibly been a dwelling-house at +some time. Bills were stuck in the ground-floor window indicating that +the three floors were to let as offices; so much was discernible in that +reflected moonlight. + +I could hear the tide, lapping upon the wharf, could feel the chill from +the river and hear the vague noises which, night nor day, never cease +upon the great commercial waterway. + +“Down!” whispered Smith. “Make no noise! I suspected it. They heard the +car following!” + +I obeyed, clutching at him for support; for I was suddenly dizzy, and my +heart was leaping wildly--furiously. + +“You saw her?” he whispered. + +Saw her! yes, I had seen her! And my poor dream-world was toppling about +me, its cities, ashes and its fairness, dust. + +Peering from the window, her great eyes wondrous in the moonlight and +her red lips parted, hair gleaming like burnished foam and her anxious +gaze set upon the corner of the lane--was Karamaneh... Karamaneh whom +once we had rescued from the house of this fiendish Chinese doctor; +Karamaneh who had been our ally; in fruitless quest of whom,--when, too +late, I realized how empty my life was become--I had wasted what little +of the world’s goods I possessed;--Karamaneh! + +“Poor old Petrie,” murmured Smith--“I knew, but I hadn’t the heart--He +has her again--God knows by what chains he holds her. But she’s only +a woman, old boy, and women are very much alike--very much alike from +Charing Cross to Pagoda Road.” + +He rested his hand on my shoulder for a moment; I am ashamed to confess +that I was trembling; then, clenching my teeth with that mechanical +physical effort which often accompanies a mental one, I swallowed the +bitter draught of Nayland Smith’s philosophy. He was raising himself, to +peer, cautiously, over the top of the door. I did likewise. + +The window from which the girl had looked was nearly on a level with our +eyes, and as I raised my head above the woodwork, I quite distinctly +saw her go out of the room. The door, as she opened it, admitted a dull +light, against which her figure showed silhouetted for a moment. Then +the door was reclosed. + +“We must risk the other windows,” rapped Smith. + +Before I had grasped the nature of his plan he was over and had dropped +almost noiselessly upon the casks outside. Again I followed his lead. + +“You are not going to attempt anything, singlehanded--against him?” I +asked. + +“Petrie--Eltham is in that house. He has been brought here to be put +to the question, in the medieval, and Chinese, sense! Is there time to +summon assistance?” + +I shuddered. This had been in my mind, certainly, but so expressed it +was definitely horrible--revolting, yet stimulating. + +“You have the pistol,” added Smith--“follow closely, and quietly.” + +He walked across the tops of the casks and leaped down, pointing to that +nearest to the closed door of the house. I helped him place it under the +open window. A second we set beside it, and, not without some noise, got +a third on top. + +Smith mounted. + +His jaw muscles were very prominent and his eyes shone like steel; but +he was as cool as though he were about to enter a theater and not the +den of the most stupendous genius who ever worked for evil. I would +forgive any man who, knowing Dr. Fu-Manchu, feared him; I feared him +myself--feared him as one fears a scorpion; but when Nayland Smith +hauled himself up on the wooden ledge above the door and swung thence +into the darkened room, I followed and was in close upon his heels. But +I admired him, for he had every ampere of his self-possession in hand; +my own case was different. + +He spoke close to my ear. + +“Is your hand steady? We may have to shoot.” + +I thought of Karamaneh, of lovely dark-eyed Karamaneh whom this +wonderful, evil product of secret China had stolen from me--for so I now +adjudged it. + +“Rely upon me!” I said grimly. “I...” + +The words ceased--frozen on my tongue. + +There are things that one seeks to forget, but it is my lot often to +remember the sound which at that moment literally struck me rigid with +horror. Yet it was only a groan; but, merciful God! I pray that it may +never be my lot to listen to such a groan again. + +Smith drew a sibilant breath. + +“It’s Eltham!” he whispered hoarsely--“they’re torturing--” + +“No, no!” screamed a woman’s voice--a voice that thrilled me anew, but +with another emotion-- + +“Not that, not--” + +I distinctly heard the sound of a blow. Followed a sort of vague +scuffling. A door somewhere at the back of the house opened--and shut +again. Some one was coming along the passage toward us! + +“Stand back!” Smith’s voice was low, but perfectly steady. “Leave it to +me!” + +Nearer came the footsteps and nearer. I could hear suppressed sobs. The +door opened, admitting again the faint light--and Karamaneh came in. The +place was quite unfurnished, offering no possibility of hiding; but to +hide was unnecessary. + +Her slim figure had not crossed the threshold ere Smith had his arm +about the girl’s waist and one hand clapped to her mouth. A stifled gasp +she uttered, and he lifted her into the room. + +I stepped forward and closed the door. A faint perfume stole to my +nostrils--a vague, elusive breath of the East, reminiscent of strange +days that, now, seemed to belong to a remote past. Karamaneh! that +faint, indefinable perfume was part of her dainty personality; it may +appear absurd--impossible--but many and many a time I had dreamt of it. + +“In my breast pocket,” rapped Smith; “the light.” + +I bent over the girl as he held her. She was quite still, but I could +have wished that I had had more certain mastery of myself. I took the +torch from Smith’s pocket, and, mechanically, directed it upon the +captive. + +She was dressed very plainly, wearing a simple blue skirt, and white +blouse. It was easy to divine that it was she whom Eltham had mistaken +for a French maid. A brooch set with a ruby was pinned at the point +where the blouse opened--gleaming fierily and harshly against the soft +skin. Her face was pale and her eyes wide with fear. + +“There is some cord in my right-hand pocket,” said Smith; “I came +provided. Tie her wrists.” + +I obeyed him, silently. The girl offered no resistance, but I think +I never essayed a less congenial task than that of binding her white +wrists. The jeweled fingers lay quite listlessly in my own. + +“Make a good job of it!” rapped Smith, significantly. + +A flush rose to my cheeks, for I knew well enough what he meant. + +“She is fastened,” I said, and I turned the ray of the torch upon her +again. + +Smith removed his hand from her mouth but did not relax his grip of her. +She looked up at me with eyes in which I could have sworn there was no +recognition. But a flush momentarily swept over her face, and left it +pale again. + +“We shall have to--gag her--” + +“Smith, I can’t do it!” + +The girl’s eyes filled with tears and she looked up at my companion +pitifully. + +“Please don’t be cruel to me,” she whispered, with that soft accent +which always played havoc with my composure. “Every one--every one-is +cruel to me. I will promise--indeed I will swear, to be quiet. Oh, +believe me, if you can save him I will do nothing to hinder you.” Her +beautiful head drooped. “Have some pity for me as well.” + +“Karamaneh” I said. “We would have believed you once. We cannot, now.” + +She started violently. + +“You know my name!” Her voice was barely audible. “Yet I have never seen +you in my life--” + +“See if the door locks,” interrupted Smith harshly. + +Dazed by the apparent sincerity in the voice of our lovely +captive--vacant from wonder of it all--I opened the door, felt for, and +found, a key. + +We left Karamaneh crouching against the wall; her great eyes were turned +towards me fascinatedly. Smith locked the door with much care. We began +a tip-toed progress along the dimly lighted passage. + +From beneath a door on the left, and near the end, a brighter light +shone. Beyond that again was another door. A voice was speaking in the +lighted room; yet I could have sworn that Karamaneh had come, not from +there but from the room beyond--from the far end of the passage. + +But the voice!--who, having once heard it, could ever mistake that +singular voice, alternately guttural and sibilant! + +Dr. Fu-Manchu was speaking! + +“I have asked you,” came with ever-increasing clearness (Smith had begun +to turn the knob), “to reveal to me the name of your correspondent in +Nan-Yang. I have suggested that he may be the Mandarin Yen-Sun-Yat, but +you have declined to confirm me. Yet I know” (Smith had the door open +a good three inches and was peering in) “that some official, some high +official, is a traitor. Am I to resort again to the question to learn +his name?” + +Ice seemed to enter my veins at the unseen inquisitor’s intonation of +the words “the question.” This was the Twentieth Century, yet there, in +that damnable room... + +Smith threw the door open. + +Through a sort of haze, born mostly of horror, but not entirely, I saw +Eltham, stripped to the waist and tied, with his arms upstretched, to a +rafter in the ancient ceiling. A Chinaman who wore a slop-shop blue suit +and who held an open knife in his hand, stood beside him. Eltham was +ghastly white. The appearance of his chest puzzled me momentarily, then +I realized that a sort of tourniquet of wire-netting was screwed so +tightly about him that the flesh swelled out in knobs through the mesh. +There was blood-- + +“God in heaven!” screamed Smith frenziedly--“they have the wire-jacket +on him! Shoot down that damned Chinaman, Petrie! Shoot! Shoot!” + +Lithely as a cat the man with the knife leaped around--but I raised the +Browning, and deliberately--with a cool deliberation that came to me +suddenly--shot him through the head. I saw his oblique eyes turn up to +the whites; I saw the mark squarely between his brows; and with no word +nor cry he sank to his knees and toppled forward with one yellow hand +beneath him and one outstretched, clutching--clutching--convulsively. +His pigtail came unfastened and began to uncoil, slowly, like a snake. + +I handed the pistol to Smith; I was perfectly cool, now; and I leaped +forward, took up the bloody knife from the floor and cut Eltham’s +lashings. He sank into my arms. + +“Praise God,” he murmured, weakly. “He is more merciful to me than +perhaps I deserve. Unscrew... the jacket, Petrie... I think ... I was +very near to.... weakening. Praise the good God, Who... gave me... +fortitude...” + +I got the screw of the accursed thing loosened, but the act of removing +the jacket was too agonizing for Eltham--man of iron though he was. I +laid him swooning on the floor. + +“Where is Fu-Manchu?” + +Nayland Smith, from just within the door, threw out the query in a tone +of stark amaze. I stood up--I could do nothing more for the poor victim +at the moment--and looked about me. The room was innocent of furniture, +save for heaps of rubbish on the floor, and a tin oil-lamp hung, on +the wall. The dead Chinaman lay close beside Smith. There was no second +door, the one window was barred, and from this room we had heard the +voice, the unmistakable, unforgettable voice, of Dr. Fu-Manchu. + +But Dr. Fu-Manchu was not there! + +Neither of us could accept the fact for a moment; we stood there, +looking from the dead man to the tortured man who only swooned, in a +state of helpless incredulity. + +Then the explanation flashed upon us both, simultaneously, and with a +cry of baffled rage Smith leaped along the passage to the second door. +It was wide open. I stood at his elbow when he swept its emptiness with +the ray of his pocket-lamp. + +There was a speaking-tube fixed between the two rooms! + +Smith literally ground his teeth. + +“Yet, Petrie,” he said, “we have learnt something. Fu-Manchu had +evidently promised Eltham his life if he would divulge the name of +his correspondent. He meant to keep his word; it is a sidelight on his +character.” + +“How so?” + +“Eltham has never seen Dr. Fu-Manchu, but Eltham knows certain parts of +China better than you know the Strand. Probably, if he saw Fu-Manchu, he +would recognize him for who he really is, and this, it seems, the Doctor +is anxious to avoid.” + +We ran back to where we had left Karamaneh. + +The room was empty! + +“Defeated, Petrie!” said Smith, bitterly. “The Yellow Devil is loosed on +London again!” + +He leaned from the window and the skirl of a police whistle split the +stillness of the night. + + + +CHAPTER IV. THE CRY OF A NIGHTHAWK + +Such were the episodes that marked the coming of Dr. Fu-Manchu to +London, that awakened fears long dormant and reopened old wounds--nay, +poured poison into them. I strove desperately, by close attention to +my professional duties, to banish the very memory of Karamaneh from my +mind; desperately, but how vainly! Peace was for me no more, joy was +gone from the world, and only mockery remained as my portion. + +Poor Eltham we had placed in a nursing establishment, where his +indescribable hurts could be properly tended: and his uncomplaining +fortitude not infrequently made me thoroughly ashamed of myself. +Needless to say, Smith had made such other arrangements as were +necessary to safeguard the injured man, and these proved so successful +that the malignant being whose plans they thwarted abandoned his designs +upon the heroic clergyman and directed his attention elsewhere, as I +must now proceed to relate. + +Dusk always brought with it a cloud of apprehensions, for darkness must +ever be the ally of crime; and it was one night, long after the clocks +had struck the mystic hour “when churchyards yawn,” that the hand of +Dr. Fu-Manchu again stretched out to grasp a victim. I was dismissing a +chance patient. + +“Good night, Dr. Petrie,” he said. + +“Good night, Mr. Forsyth,” I replied; and, having conducted my late +visitor to the door, I closed and bolted it, switched off the light and +went upstairs. + +My patient was chief officer of one of the P. and O. boats. He had cut +his hand rather badly on the homeward run, and signs of poisoning +having developed, had called to have the wound treated, apologizing for +troubling me at so late an hour, but explaining that he had only just +come from the docks. The hall clock announced the hour of one as I +ascended the stairs. I found myself wondering what there was in Mr. +Forsyth’s appearance which excited some vague and elusive memory. Coming +to the top floor, I opened the door of a front bedroom and was surprised +to find the interior in darkness. + +“Smith!” I called. + +“Come here and watch!” was the terse response. Nayland Smith was sitting +in the dark at the open window and peering out across the common. Even +as I saw him, a dim silhouette, I could detect that tensity in his +attitude which told of high-strung nerves. + +I joined him. + +“What is it?” I said, curiously. + +“I don’t know. Watch that clump of elms.” + +His masterful voice had the dry tone in it betokening excitement. I +leaned on the ledge beside him and looked out. The blaze of stars almost +compensated for the absence of the moon and the night had a quality of +stillness that made for awe. This was a tropical summer, and the common, +with its dancing lights dotted irregularly about it, had an unfamiliar +look to-night. The clump of nine elms showed as a dense and irregular +mass, lacking detail. + +Such moods as that which now claimed my friend are magnetic. I had no +thought of the night’s beauty, for it only served to remind me that +somewhere amid London’s millions was lurking an uncanny being, whose +life was a mystery, whose very existence was a scientific miracle. + +“Where’s your patient?” rapped Smith. + +His abrupt query diverted my thoughts into a new channel. No footstep +disturbed the silence of the highroad; where was my patient? + +I craned from the window. Smith grabbed my arm. + +“Don’t lean out,” he said. + +I drew back, glancing at him surprisedly. + +“For Heaven’s sake, why not?” + +“I’ll tell you presently, Petrie. Did you see him?” + +“I did, and I can’t make out what he is doing. He seems to have remained +standing at the gate for some reason.” + +“He has seen it!” snapped Smith. “Watch those elms.” + +His hand remained upon my arm, gripping it nervously. Shall I say that +I was surprised? I can say it with truth. But I shall add that I was +thrilled, eerily; for this subdued excitement and alert watching of +Smith could only mean one thing: + +Fu-Manchu! + +And that was enough to set me watching as keenly as he; to set me +listening; not only for sounds outside the house but for sounds within. +Doubts, suspicions, dreads, heaped themselves up in my mind. Why was +Forsyth standing there at the gate? I had never seen him before, to +my knowledge, yet there was something oddly reminiscent about the man. +Could it be that his visit formed part of a plot? Yet his wound had been +genuine enough. Thus my mind worked, feverishly; such was the effect of +an unspoken thought--Fu-Manchu. + +Nayland Smith’s grip tightened on my arm. + +“There it is again, Petrie!” he whispered. + +“Look, look!” + +His words were wholly unnecessary. I, too, had seen it; a wonderful and +uncanny sight. Out of the darkness under the elms, low down upon the +ground, grew a vaporous blue light. It flared up, elfinish, then +began to ascend. Like an igneous phantom, a witch flame, it rose, +high--higher--higher, to what I adjudged to be some twelve feet or more +from the ground. Then, high in the air, it died away again as it had +come! + +“For God’s sake, Smith, what was it?” + +“Don’t ask me, Petrie. I have seen it twice. We--” + +He paused. Rapid footsteps sounded below. Over Smith’s shoulder I saw +Forsyth cross the road, climb the low rail, and set out across the +common. + +Smith sprang impetuously to his feet. + +“We must stop him!” he said hoarsely; then, clapping a hand to my mouth +as I was about to call out--“Not a sound, Petrie!” + +He ran out of the room and went blundering downstairs in the dark, +crying: + +“Out through the garden--the side entrance!” + +I overtook him as he threw wide the door of my dispensing room. Through +it he ran and opened the door at the other end. I followed him +out, closing it behind me. The smell from some tobacco plants in a +neighboring flower-bed was faintly perceptible; no breeze stirred; and +in the great silence I could hear Smith, in front of me, tugging at the +bolt of the gate. + +Then he had it open, and I stepped out, close on his heels, and left the +door ajar. + +“We must not appear to have come from your house,” explained Smith +rapidly. “I will go along the highroad and cross to the common a hundred +yards up, where there is a pathway, as though homeward bound to the +north side. Give me half a minute’s start, then you proceed in an +opposite direction and cross from the corner of the next road. Directly +you are out of the light of the street lamps, get over the rails and run +for the elms!” + +He thrust a pistol into my hand and was off. + +While he had been with me, speaking in that incisive, impetuous way of +his, with his dark face close to mine, and his eyes gleaming like steel, +I had been at one with him in his feverish mood, but now, when I stood +alone, in that staid and respectable byway, holding a loaded pistol in +my hand, the whole thing became utterly unreal. + +It was in an odd frame of mind that I walked to the next corner, as +directed; for I was thinking, not of Dr. Fu-Manchu, the great and evil +man who dreamed of Europe and America under Chinese rule, not of Nayland +Smith, who alone stood between the Chinaman and the realization of his +monstrous schemes, not even of Karamaneh the slave girl, whose glorious +beauty was a weapon of might in Fu-Manchu’s hand, but of what impression +I must have made upon a patient had I encountered one then. + +Such were my ideas up to the moment that I crossed to the common and +vaulted into the field on my right. As I began to run toward the elms I +found myself wondering what it was all about, and for what we were +come. Fifty yards west of the trees it occurred to me that if Smith had +counted on cutting Forsyth off we were too late, for it appeared to me +that he must already be in the coppice. + +I was right. Twenty paces more I ran, and ahead of me, from the elms, +came a sound. Clearly it came through the still air--the eerie hoot of a +nighthawk. I could not recall ever to have heard the cry of that bird on +the common before, but oddly enough I attached little significance to it +until, in the ensuing instant, a most dreadful scream--a scream in which +fear, and loathing, and anger were hideously blended--thrilled me with +horror. + +After that I have no recollection of anything until I found myself +standing by the southernmost elm. + +“Smith!” I cried breathlessly. “Smith! my God! where are you?” + +As if in answer to my cry came an indescribable sound, a mingled sobbing +and choking. Out from the shadows staggered a ghastly figure--that of a +man whose face appeared to be streaked. His eyes glared at me madly and +he mowed the air with his hands like one blind and insane with fear. + +I started back; words died upon my tongue. The figure reeled and the man +fell babbling and sobbing at my very feet. + +Inert I stood, looking down at him. He writhed a moment--and was still. +The silence again became perfect. Then, from somewhere beyond the elms, +Nayland Smith appeared. I did not move. Even when he stood beside me, I +merely stared at him fatuously. + +“I let him walk to his death, Petrie,” I heard dimly. “God forgive +me--God forgive me!” + +The words aroused me. + +“Smith”--my voice came as a whisper--“for one awful moment I thought--” + +“So did some one else,” he rapped. “Our poor sailor has met the end +designed for me, Petrie!” + +At that I realized two things: I knew why Forsyth’s face had struck me +as being familiar in some puzzling way, and I knew why Forsyth now +lay dead upon the grass. Save that he was a fair man and wore a slight +mustache, he was, in features and build, the double of Nayland Smith! + + + +CHAPTER V. THE NET + +We raised the poor victim and turned him over on his back. I dropped +upon my knees, and with unsteady fingers began to strike a match. A +slight breeze was arising and sighing gently through the elms, but, +screened by my hands, the flame of the match took life. It illuminated +wanly the sun-baked face of Nayland Smith, his eyes gleaming with +unnatural brightness. I bent forward, and the dying light of the match +touched that other face. + +“Oh, God!” whispered Smith. + +A faint puff of wind extinguished the match. + +In all my surgical experience I had never met with anything quite so +horrible. Forsyth’s livid face was streaked with tiny streams of blood, +which proceeded from a series of irregular wounds. One group of these +clustered upon his left temple, another beneath his right eye, and +others extended from the chin down to the throat. They were black, +almost like tattoo marks, and the entire injured surface was bloated +indescribably. His fists were clenched; he was quite rigid. + +Smith’s piercing eyes were set upon me eloquently as I knelt on the path +and made my examination--an examination which that first glimpse when +Forsyth came staggering out from the trees had rendered useless--a mere +matter of form. + +“He’s quite dead, Smith,” I said huskily. “It’s--unnatural--it--” + +Smith began beating his fist into his left palm and taking little, +short, nervous strides up and down beside the dead man. I could hear a +car humming along the highroad, but I remained there on my knees staring +dully at the disfigured bloody face which but a matter of minutes +since had been that of a clean looking British seaman. I found myself +contrasting his neat, squarely trimmed mustache with the bloated face +above it, and counting the little drops of blood which trembled upon +its edge. There were footsteps approaching. I stood up. The footsteps +quickened; and I turned as a constable ran up. + +“What’s this?” he demanded gruffly, and stood with his fists clenched, +looking from Smith to me and down at that which lay between us. Then his +hand flew to his breast; there was a silvern gleam and-- + +“Drop that whistle!” snapped Smith--and struck it from the man’s hand. +“Where’s your lantern? Don’t ask questions!” + +The constable started back and was evidently debating upon his chances +with the two of us, when my friend pulled a letter from his pocket and +thrust it under the man’s nose. + +“Read that!” he directed harshly, “and then listen to my orders.” + +There was something in his voice which changed the officer’s opinion of +the situation. He directed the light of his lantern upon the open letter +and seemed to be stricken with wonder. + +“If you have any doubts,” continued Smith--“you may not be familiar with +the Commissioner’s signature--you have only to ring up Scotland Yard +from Dr. Petrie’s house, to which we shall now return, to disperse +them.” He pointed to Forsyth. “Help us to carry him there. We must not +be seen; this must be hushed up. You understand? It must not get into +the press--” + +The man saluted respectfully; and the three of us addressed ourselves +to the mournful task. By slow stages we bore the dead man to the edge +of the common, carried him across the road and into my house, without +exciting attention even on the part of those vagrants who nightly slept +out in the neighborhood. + +We laid our burden upon the surgery table. + +“You will want to make an examination, Petrie,” said Smith in his +decisive way, “and the officer here might ‘phone for the ambulance. I +have some investigations to make also. I must have the pocket lamp.” + +He raced upstairs to his room, and an instant later came running down +again. The front door banged. + +“The telephone is in the hall,” I said to the constable. + +“Thank you, sir.” + +He went out of the surgery as I switched on the lamp over the table and +began to examine the marks upon Forsyth’s skin. These, as I have said, +were in groups and nearly all in the form of elongated punctures; a +fairly deep incision with a pear-shaped and superficial scratch beneath +it. One of the tiny wounds had penetrated the right eye. + +The symptoms, or those which I had been enabled to observe as Forsyth +had first staggered into view from among the elms, were most puzzling. +Clearly enough, the muscles of articulation and the respiratory muscles +had been affected; and now the livid face, dotted over with tiny wounds +(they were also on the throat), set me mentally groping for a clue to +the manner of his death. + +No clue presented itself; and my detailed examination of the body +availed me nothing. The gray herald of dawn was come when the police +arrived with the ambulance and took Forsyth away. + +I was just taking my cap from the rack when Nayland Smith returned. + +“Smith!” I cried--“have you found anything?” + +He stood there in the gray light of the hallway, tugging at the lobe of +his left ear, an old trick of his. + +The bronzed face looked very gaunt, I thought, and his eyes were bright +with that febrile glitter which once I had disliked, but which I had +learned from experience were due to tremendous nervous excitement. +At such times he could act with icy coolness and his mental faculties +seemed temporarily to acquire an abnormal keenness. He made no direct +reply; but-- + +“Have you any milk?” he jerked abruptly. + +So wholly unexpected was the question, that for a moment I failed to +grasp it. Then-- + +“Milk!” I began. + +“Exactly, Petrie! If you can find me some milk, I shall be obliged.” + +I turned to descend to the kitchen, when-- + +“The remains of the turbot from dinner, Petrie, would also be welcome, +and I think I should like a trowel.” + +I stopped at the stairhead and faced him. + +“I cannot suppose that you are joking, Smith,” I said, “but--” + +He laughed dryly. + +“Forgive me, old man,” he replied. “I was so preoccupied with my own +train of thought that it never occurred to me how absurd my request must +have sounded. I will explain my singular tastes later; at the moment, +hustle is the watchword.” + +Evidently he was in earnest, and I ran downstairs accordingly, returning +with a garden trowel, a plate of cold fish and a glass of milk. + +“Thanks, Petrie,” said Smith--“If you would put the milk in a jug--” + +I was past wondering, so I simply went and fetched a jug, into which he +poured the milk. Then, with the trowel in his pocket, the plate of cold +turbot in one hand and the milk jug in the other, he made for the door. +He had it open when another idea evidently occurred to him. + +“I’ll trouble you for the pistol, Petrie.” + +I handed him the pistol without a word. + +“Don’t assume that I want to mystify you,” he added, “but the presence +of any one else might jeopardize my plan. I don’t expect to be long.” + +The cold light of dawn flooded the hallway momentarily; then the door +closed again and I went upstairs to my study, watching Nayland Smith as +he strode across the common in the early morning mist. He was making for +the Nine Elms, but I lost sight of him before he reached them. + +I sat there for some time, watching for the first glow of sunrise. A +policeman tramped past the house, and, a while later, a belated reveler +in evening clothes. That sense of unreality assailed me again. Out there +in the gray mists a man who was vested with powers which rendered him a +law unto himself, who had the British Government behind him in all that +he might choose to do, who had been summoned from Rangoon to London on +singular and dangerous business, was employing himself with a plate of +cold turbot, a jug of milk, and a trowel! + +Away to the right, and just barely visible, a tramcar stopped by the +common; then proceeded on its way, coming in a westerly direction. Its +lights twinkled yellowly through the grayness, but I was less concerned +with the approaching car than with the solitary traveler who had +descended from it. + +As the car went rocking by below me, I strained my eyes in an endeavor +more clearly to discern the figure, which, leaving the highroad, had +struck out across the common. It was that of a woman, who seemingly +carried a bulky bag or parcel. + +One must be a gross materialist to doubt that there are latent powers in +man which man, in modern times, neglects, or knows not how to develop. I +became suddenly conscious of a burning curiosity respecting this lonely +traveler who traveled at an hour so strange. With no definite plan in +mind, I went downstairs, took a cap from the rack, and walked briskly +out of the house and across the common in a direction which I thought +would enable me to head off the woman. + +I had slightly miscalculated the distance, as Fate would have it, and +with a patch of gorse effectually screening my approach, I came upon +her, kneeling on the damp grass and unfastening the bundle which had +attracted my attention. I stopped and watched her. + +She was dressed in bedraggled fashion in rusty black, wore a common +black straw hat and a thick veil; but it seemed to me that the dexterous +hands at work untying the bundle were slim and white; and I perceived a +pair of hideous cotton gloves lying on the turf beside her. As she threw +open the wrappings and lifted out something that looked like a +small shrimping net, I stepped around the bush, crossed silently the +intervening patch of grass, and stood beside her. + +A faint breath of perfume reached me--of a perfume which, like the +secret incense of Ancient Egypt, seemed to assail my soul. The glamour +of the Orient was in that subtle essence; and I only knew one woman who +used it. I bent over the kneeling figure. + +“Good morning,” I said; “can I assist you in any way?” + +She came to her feet like a startled deer, and flung away from me with +the lithe movement of some Eastern dancing girl. + +Now came the sun, and its heralding rays struck sparks from the +jewels upon the white fingers of this woman who wore the garments of +a mendicant. My heart gave a great leap. It was with difficulty that I +controlled my voice. + +“There is no cause for alarm,” I added. + +She stood watching me; even through the coarse veil I could see how her +eyes glittered. I stooped and picked up the net. + +“Oh!” The whispered word was scarcely audible, but it was enough; I +doubted no longer. + +“This is a net for bird snaring,” I said. “What strange bird are you +seeking--Karamaneh?” + +With a passionate gesture Karamaneh snatched off the veil, and with +it the ugly black hat. The cloud of wonderful, intractable hair came +rumpling about her face, and her glorious eyes blazed out upon me. How +beautiful they were, with the dark beauty of an Egyptian night; how +often had they looked into mine in dreams! + +To labor against a ceaseless yearning for a woman whom one knows, upon +evidence that none but a fool might reject, to be worthless--evil; is +there any torture to which the soul of man is subject, more pitiless? +Yet this was my lot, for what past sins assigned to me I was unable to +conjecture; and this was the woman, this lovely slave of a monster, this +creature of Dr. Fu-Manchu. + +“I suppose you will declare that you do not know me!” I said harshly. + +Her lips trembled, but she made no reply. + +“It is very convenient to forget, sometimes,” I ran on bitterly, then +checked myself; for I knew that my words were prompted by a feckless +desire to hear her defense, by a fool’s hope that it might be an +acceptable one. + +I looked again at the net contrivance in my hand; it had a strong spring +fitted to it and a line attached. Quite obviously it was intended for +snaring. + +“What were you about to do?” I demanded sharply--but in my heart, +poor fool that I was, I found admiration for the exquisite arch of +Karamaneh’s lips, and reproach because they were so tremulous. + +She spoke then. + +“Dr. Petrie--” + +“Well?” + +“You seem to be--angry with me, not so much because of what I do, as +because I do not remember you. Yet--” + +“Kindly do not revert to the matter,” I interrupted. “You have chosen, +very conveniently, to forget that once we were friends. Please yourself. +But answer my question.” + +She clasped her hands with a sort of wild abandon. + +“Why do you treat me so!” she cried; she had the most fascinating accent +imaginable. “Throw me into prison, kill me if you like, for what I have +done!” She stamped her foot. “For what I have done! But do not torture +me, try to drive me mad with your reproaches--that I forget you! I tell +you--again I tell you--that until you came one night, last week, to +rescue some one from--” There was the old trick of hesitating before the +name of Fu-Manchu--“from him, I had never, never seen you!” + +The dark eyes looked into mine, afire with a positive hunger for +belief--or so I was sorely tempted to suppose. But the facts were +against her. + +“Such a declaration is worthless,” I said, as coldly as I could. “You +are a traitress; you betray those who are mad enough to trust you--” + +“I am no traitress!” she blazed at me; her eyes were magnificent. + +“This is mere nonsense. You think that it will pay you better to serve +Fu-Manchu than to remain true to your friends. Your ‘slavery’--for I +take it you are posing as a slave again--is evidently not very harsh. +You serve Fu-Manchu, lure men to their destruction, and in return he +loads you with jewels, lavishes gifts--” + +“Ah! so!” + +She sprang forward, raising flaming eyes to mine; her lips were slightly +parted. With that wild abandon which betrayed the desert blood in her +veins, she wrenched open the neck of her bodice and slipped a soft +shoulder free of the garment. She twisted around, so that the white skin +was but inches removed from me. + +“These are some of the gifts that he lavishes upon me!” + +I clenched my teeth. Insane thoughts flooded my mind. For that creamy +skin was red with the marks of the lash! + +She turned, quickly rearranging her dress, and watching me the while. I +could not trust myself to speak for a moment, then: + +“If I am a stranger to you, as you claim, why do you give me your +confidence?” I asked. + +“I have known you long enough to trust you!” she said simply, and turned +her head aside. + +“Then why do you serve this inhuman monster?” + +She snapped her fingers oddly, and looked up at me from under her +lashes. “Why do you question me if you think that everything I say is a +lie?” + +It was a lesson in logic--from a woman! I changed the subject. + +“Tell me what you came here to do,” I demanded. + +She pointed to the net in my hands. + +“To catch birds; you have said so yourself.” + +“What bird?” + +She shrugged her shoulders. + +And now a memory was born within my brain; it was that of the cry of +the nighthawk which had harbingered the death of Forsyth! The net was +a large and strong one; could it be that some horrible fowl of the +air--some creature unknown to Western naturalists--had been released +upon the common last night? I thought of the marks upon Forsyth’s face +and throat; I thought of the profound knowledge of obscure and dreadful +things possessed by the Chinaman. + +The wrapping, in which the net had been, lay at my feet. I stooped and +took out from it a wicker basket. Karamaneh stood watching me and biting +her lip, but she made no move to check me. I opened the basket. It +contained a large phial, the contents of which possessed a pungent and +peculiar smell. + +I was utterly mystified. + +“You will have to accompany me to my house,” I said sternly. + +Karamaneh upturned her great eyes to mine. They were wide with fear. She +was on the point of speaking when I extended my hand to grasp her. At +that, the look of fear was gone and one of rebellion held its place. Ere +I had time to realize her purpose, she flung back from me with that wild +grace which I had met with in no other woman, turned and ran! + +Fatuously, net and basket in hand, I stood looking after her. The idea +of pursuit came to me certainly; but I doubted if I could have outrun +her. For Karamaneh ran, not like a girl used to town or even country +life, but with the lightness and swiftness of a gazelle; ran like the +daughter of the desert that she was. + +Some two hundred yards she went, stopped, and looked back. It would seem +that the sheer joy of physical effort had aroused the devil in her, the +devil that must lie latent in every woman with eyes like the eyes of +Karamaneh. + +In the ever brightening sunlight I could see the lithe figure swaying; +no rags imaginable could mask its beauty. I could see the red lips +and gleaming teeth. Then--and it was music good to hear, despite its +taunt--she laughed defiantly, turned, and ran again! + +I resigned myself to defeat; I blush to add, gladly! Some evidences of +a world awakening were perceptible about me now. Feathered choirs hailed +the new day joyously. Carrying the mysterious contrivance which I had +captured from the enemy, I set out in the direction of my house, my mind +very busy with conjectures respecting the link between this bird snare +and the cry like that of a nighthawk which we had heard at the moment of +Forsyth’s death. + +The path that I had chosen led me around the border of the Mound Pond--a +small pool having an islet in the center. Lying at the margin of the +pond I was amazed to see the plate and jug which Nayland Smith had +borrowed recently! + +Dropping my burden, I walked down to the edge of the water. I was filled +with a sudden apprehension. Then, as I bent to pick up the now empty +jug, came a hail: + +“All right, Petrie! Shall join you in a moment!” + +I started up, looked to right and left; but, although the voice had been +that of Nayland Smith, no sign could I discern of his presence! + +“Smith!” I cried--“Smith!” + +“Coming!” + +Seriously doubting my senses, I looked in the direction from which the +voice had seemed to proceed--and there was Nayland Smith. + +He stood on the islet in the center of the pond, and, as I perceived +him, he walked down into the shallow water and waded across to me! + +“Good heavens!” I began-- + +One of his rare laughs interrupted me. + +“You must think me mad this morning, Petrie!” he said. “But I have made +several discoveries. Do you know what that islet in the pond really is?” + +“Merely an islet, I suppose--” + +“Nothing of the kind; it is a burial mound, Petrie! It marks the site of +one of the Plague Pits where victims were buried during the Great +Plague of London. You will observe that, although you have seen it every +morning for some years, it remains for a British Commissioner resident +in Burma to acquaint you with its history! Hullo!”--the laughter was +gone from his eyes, and they were steely hard again--“what the blazes +have we here!” + +He picked up the net. “What! a bird trap!” + +“Exactly!” I said. + +Smith turned his searching gaze upon me. “Where did you find it, +Petrie?” + +“I did not exactly find it,” I replied; and I related to him the +circumstances of my meeting with Karamaneh. + +He directed that cold stare upon me throughout the narrative, and when, +with some embarrassment, I had told him of the girl’s escape-- + +“Petrie,” he said succinctly, “you are an imbecile!” + +I flushed with anger, for not even from Nayland Smith, whom I esteemed +above all other men, could I accept such words uttered as he had uttered +them. We glared at one another. + +“Karamaneh,” he continued coldly, “is a beautiful toy, I grant you; but +so is a cobra. Neither is suitable for playful purposes.” + +“Smith!” I cried hotly--“drop that! Adopt another tone or I cannot +listen to you!” + +“You must listen,” he said, squaring his lean jaw truculently. “You are +playing, not only with a pretty girl who is the favorite of a Chinese +Nero, but with my life! And I object, Petrie, on purely personal +grounds!” + +I felt my anger oozing from me; for this was strictly just. I had +nothing to say, and Smith continued: + +“You know that she is utterly false, yet a glance or two from those dark +eyes of hers can make a fool of you! A woman made a fool of me, once; +but I learned my lesson; you have failed to learn yours. If you are +determined to go to pieces on the rock that broke up Adam, do so! But +don’t involve me in the wreck, Petrie--for that might mean a yellow +emperor of the world, and you know it!” + +“Your words are unnecessarily brutal, Smith,” I said, feeling very +crestfallen, “but there--perhaps I fully deserve them all.” + +“You do!” he assured me, but he relaxed immediately. “A murderous +attempt is made upon my life, resulting in the death of a perfectly +innocent man in no way concerned. Along you come and let an accomplice, +perhaps a participant, escape, merely, because she has a red mouth, or +black lashes, or whatever it is that fascinates you so hopelessly!” + +He opened the wicker basket, sniffing at the contents. + +“Ah!” he snapped, “do you recognize this odor?” + +“Certainly.” + +“Then you have some idea respecting Karamaneh’s quarry?” + +“Nothing of the kind!” + +Smith shrugged his shoulders. + +“Come along, Petrie,” he said, linking his arm in mine. + +We proceeded. Many questions there were that I wanted to put to him, but +one above all. + +“Smith,” I said, “what, in Heaven’s name, were you doing on the mound? +Digging something up?” + +“No,” he replied, smiling dryly; “burying something!” + + + +CHAPTER VI. UNDER THE ELMS + +Dusk found Nayland Smith and me at the top bedroom window. We knew, now +that poor Forsyth’s body had been properly examined, that he had died +from poisoning. Smith, declaring that I did not deserve his confidence, +had refused to confide in me his theory of the origin of the peculiar +marks upon the body. + +“On the soft ground under the trees,” he said, “I found his tracks right +up to the point where something happened. There were no other fresh +tracks for several yards around. He was attacked as he stood close to +the trunk of one of the elms. Six or seven feet away I found some other +tracks, very much like this.” + +He marked a series of dots upon the blotting pad at his elbow. + +“Claws!” I cried. “That eerie call! like the call of a nighthawk--is it +some unknown species of--flying thing?” + +“We shall see, shortly; possibly to-night,” was his reply. “Since, +probably owing to the absence of any moon, a mistake was made,” his jaw +hardened at the thoughts of poor Forsyth--“another attempt along the +same lines will almost certainly follow--you know Fu-Manchu’s system?” + +So in the darkness, expectant, we sat watching the group of nine elms. +To-night the moon was come, raising her Aladdin’s lamp up to the star +world and summoning magic shadows into being. By midnight the highroad +showed deserted, the common was a place of mystery; and save for the +periodical passage of an electric car, in blazing modernity, this was a +fit enough stage for an eerie drama. + +No notice of the tragedy had appeared in print; Nayland Smith was vested +with powers to silence the press. No detectives, no special constables, +were posted. My friend was of opinion that the publicity which had +been given to the deeds of Dr. Fu-Manchu in the past, together with +the sometimes clumsy co-operation of the police, had contributed not a +little to the Chinaman’s success. + +“There is only one thing to fear,” he jerked suddenly; “he may not be +ready for another attempt to-night.” + +“Why?” + +“Since he has only been in England for a short time, his menagerie of +venomous things may be a limited one at present.” + +Earlier in the evening there had been a brief but violent thunderstorm, +with a tropical downpour of rain, and now clouds were scudding across +the blue of the sky. Through a temporary rift in the veiling the +crescent of the moon looked down upon us. It had a greenish tint, and it +set me thinking of the filmed, green eyes of Fu-Manchu. + +The cloud passed and a lake of silver spread out to the edge of the +coppice, where it terminated at a shadow bank. + +“There it is, Petrie!” hissed Nayland Smith. + +A lambent light was born in the darkness; it rose slowly, unsteadily, to +a great height, and died. + +“It’s under the trees, Smith!” + +But he was already making for the door. Over his shoulder: + +“Bring the pistol, Petrie!” he cried; “I have another. Give me at least +twenty yards’ start or no attempt may be made. But the instant I’m under +the trees, join me.” + +Out of the house we ran, and over onto the common, which latterly had +been a pageant ground for phantom warring. The light did not appear +again; and as Smith plunged off toward the trees, I wondered if he knew +what uncanny thing was hidden there. I more than suspected that he had +solved the mystery. + +His instructions to keep well in the rear I understood. Fu-Manchu, or +the creature of Fu-Manchu, would attempt nothing in the presence of a +witness. But we knew full well that the instrument of death which was +hidden in the elm coppice could do its ghastly work and leave no clue, +could slay and vanish. For had not Forsyth come to a dreadful end while +Smith and I were within twenty yards of him? + +Not a breeze stirred, as Smith, ahead of me--for I had slowed my +pace--came up level with the first tree. The moon sailed clear of the +straggling cloud wisps which alone told of the recent storm; and I noted +that an irregular patch of light lay silvern on the moist ground under +the elms where otherwise lay shadow. + +He passed on, slowly. I began to run again. Black against the silvern +patch, I saw him emerge--and look up. + +“Be careful, Smith!” I cried--and I was racing under the trees to join +him. + +Uttering a loud cry, he leaped--away from the pool of light. + +“Stand back, Petrie!” he screamed--“Back! further!” + +He charged into me, shoulder lowered, and sent me reeling! + +Mixed up with his excited cry I had heard a loud splintering and +sweeping of branches overhead; and now as we staggered into the shadows +it seemed that one of the elms was reaching down to touch us! So, at +least, the phenomenon presented itself to my mind in that fleeting +moment while Smith, uttering his warning cry, was hurling me back. + +Then the truth became apparent. + +With an appalling crash, a huge bough fell from above. One piercing, +awful shriek there was, a crackling of broken branches, and a choking +groan... + +The crack of Smith’s pistol close beside me completed my confusion of +mind. + +“Missed!” he yelled. “Shoot it, Petrie! On your left! For God’s sake +don’t miss it!” + +I turned. A lithe black shape was streaking past me. I +fired--once--twice. Another frightful cry made yet more hideous the +nocturne. + +Nayland Smith was directing the ray of a pocket torch upon the fallen +bough. + +“Have you killed it, Petrie?” he cried. + +“Yes, yes!” + +I stood beside him, looking down. From the tangle of leaves and twigs +an evil yellow face looked up at us. The features were contorted with +agony, but the malignant eyes, wherein light was dying, regarded us with +inflexible hatred. The man was pinned beneath the heavy bough; his back +was broken; and as we watched, he expired, frothing slightly at the +mouth, and quitted his tenement of clay, leaving those glassy eyes set +hideously upon us. + +“The pagan gods fight upon our side,” said Smith strangely. “Elms have a +dangerous habit of shedding boughs in still weather--particularly after +a storm. Pan, god of the woods, with this one has performed Justice’s +work of retribution.” + +“I don’t understand. Where was this man--” + +“Up the tree, lying along the bough which fell, Petrie! That is why he +left no footmarks. Last night no doubt he made his escape by swinging +from bough to bough, ape fashion, and descending to the ground somewhere +at the other side of the coppice.” + +He glanced at me. + +“You are wondering, perhaps,” he suggested, “what caused the mysterious +light? I could have told you this morning, but I fear I was in a bad +temper, Petrie. It’s very simple: a length of tape soaked in spirit or +something of the kind, and sheltered from the view of any one watching +from your windows, behind the trunk of the tree; then, the end ignited, +lowered, still behind the tree, to the ground. The operator swinging it +around, the flame ascended, of course. I found the unburned fragment of +the tape last night, a few yards from here.” + +I was peering down at Fu-Manchu’s servant, the hideous yellow man who +lay dead in a bower of elm leaves. + +“He has some kind of leather bag beside him,” I began-- + +“Exactly!” rapped Smith. “In that he carried his dangerous instrument of +death; from that he released it!” + +“Released what?” + +“What your fascinating friend came to recapture this morning.” + +“Don’t taunt me, Smith!” I said bitterly. “Is it some species of bird?” + +“You saw the marks on Forsyth’s body, and I told you of those which I +had traced upon the ground here. They were caused by claws, Petrie!” + +“Claws! I thought so! But what claws?” + +“The claws of a poisonous thing. I recaptured the one used last night, +killed it--against my will--and buried it on the mound. I was afraid to +throw it in the pond, lest some juvenile fisherman should pull it out +and sustain a scratch. I don’t know how long the claws would remain +venomous.” + +“You are treating me like a child, Smith,” I said slowly. “No doubt I +am hopelessly obtuse, but perhaps you will tell me what this Chinaman +carried in a leather bag and released upon Forsyth. It was something +which you recaptured, apparently with the aid of a plate of cold turbot +and a jug of milk! It was something, also, which Karamaneh had been sent +to recapture with the aid--” + +I stopped. + +“Go on,” said Nayland Smith, turning the ray to the left, “what did she +have in the basket?” + +“Valerian,” I replied mechanically. + +The ray rested upon the lithe creature that I had shot down. + +It was a black cat! + +“A cat will go through fire and water for valerian,” said Smith; “but I +got first innings this morning with fish and milk! I had recognized the +imprints under the trees for those of a cat, and I knew, that if a cat +had been released here it would still be hiding in the neighborhood, +probably in the bushes. I finally located a cat, sure enough, and +came for bait! I laid my trap, for the animal was too frightened to be +approachable, and then shot it; I had to. That yellow fiend used the +light as a decoy. The branch which killed him jutted out over the path +at a spot where an opening in the foliage above allowed some moon rays +to penetrate. Directly the victim stood beneath, the Chinaman uttered +his bird cry; the one below looked up, and the cat, previously held +silent and helpless in the leather sack, was dropped accurately upon his +head!” + +“But”--I was growing confused. + +Smith stooped lower. + +“The cat’s claws are sheathed now,” he said; “but if you could examine +them you would find that they are coated with a shining black substance. +Only Fu-Manchu knows what that substance is, Petrie, but you and I know +what it can do!” + + + +CHAPTER VII. ENTER MR. ABEL SLATTIN + +“I don’t blame you!” rapped Nayland Smith. “Suppose we say, then, a +thousand pounds if you show us the present hiding-place of Fu-Manchu, +the payment to be in no way subject to whether we profit by your +information or not?” + +Abel Slattin shrugged his shoulders, racially, and returned to the +armchair which he had just quitted. He reseated himself, placing his hat +and cane upon my writing-table. + +“A little agreement in black and white?” he suggested smoothly. + +Smith raised himself up out of the white cane chair, and, bending +forward over a corner of the table, scribbled busily upon a sheet of +notepaper with my fountain-pen. + +The while he did so, I covertly studied our visitor. He lay back in +the armchair, his heavy eyelids lowered deceptively. He was a thought +overdressed--a big man, dark-haired and well groomed, who toyed with a +monocle most unsuitable to his type. During the preceding conversation, +I had been vaguely surprised to note Mr. Abel Slattin’s marked American +accent. + +Sometimes, when Slattin moved, a big diamond which he wore upon the +third finger of his right hand glittered magnificently. There was a sort +of bluish tint underlying the dusky skin, noticeable even in his hands +but proclaiming itself significantly in his puffy face and especially +under the eyes. I diagnosed a laboring valve somewhere in the heart +system. + +Nayland Smith’s pen scratched on. My glance strayed from our Semitic +caller to his cane, lying upon the red leather before me. It was of most +unusual workmanship, apparently Indian, being made of some kind of dark +brown, mottled wood, bearing a marked resemblance to a snake’s skin; and +the top of the cane was carved in conformity, to represent the head +of what I took to be a puff-adder, fragments of stone, or beads, being +inserted to represent the eyes, and the whole thing being finished with +an artistic realism almost startling. + +When Smith had tossed the written page to Slattin, and he, having read +it with an appearance of carelessness, had folded it neatly and placed +it in his pocket, I said: + +“You have a curio here?” + +Our visitor, whose dark eyes revealed all the satisfaction which, by his +manner, he sought to conceal, nodded and took up the cane in his hand. + +“It comes from Australia, Doctor,” he replied; “it’s aboriginal work, +and was given to me by a client. You thought it was Indian? Everybody +does. It’s my mascot.” + +“Really?” + +“It is indeed. Its former owner ascribed magical powers to it! In +fact, I believe he thought that it was one of those staffs mentioned in +biblical history--” + +“Aaron’s rod?” suggested Smith, glancing at the cane. + +“Something of the sort,” said Slattin, standing up and again preparing +to depart. + +“You will ‘phone us, then?” asked my friend. + +“You will hear from me to-morrow,” was the reply. + +Smith returned to the cane armchair, and Slattin, bowing to both of us, +made his way to the door as I rang for the girl to show him out. + +“Considering the importance of his proposal,” I began, as the door +closed, “you hardly received our visitor with cordiality.” + +“I hate to have any relations with him,” answered my friend; “but we +must not be squeamish respecting our instruments in dealing with Dr. +Fu-Manchu. Slattin has a rotten reputation--even for a private inquiry +agent. He is little better than a blackmailer--” + +“How do you know?” + +“Because I called on our friend Weymouth at the Yard yesterday and +looked up the man’s record.” + +“Whatever for?” + +“I knew that he was concerning himself, for some reason, in the case. +Beyond doubt he has established some sort of communication with the +Chinese group; I am only wondering--” + +“You don’t mean--” + +“Yes--I do, Petrie! I tell you he is unscrupulous enough to stoop even +to that.” + +No doubt, Slattin knew that this gaunt, eager-eyed Burmese commissioner +was vested with ultimate authority in his quest of the mighty Chinaman +who represented things unutterable, whose potentialities for evil were +boundless as his genius, who personified a secret danger, the extent +and nature of which none of us truly understood. And, learning of these +things, with unerring Semitic instinct he had sought an opening in this +glittering Rialto. But there were two bidders! + +“You think he may have sunk so low as to become a creature of +Fu-Manchu?” I asked, aghast. + +“Exactly! If it paid him well I do not doubt that he would serve that +master as readily as any other. His record is about as black as it +well could be. Slattin is of course an assumed name; he was known as +Lieutenant Pepley when he belonged to the New York Police, and he was +kicked out of the service for complicity in an unsavory Chinatown case.” + +“Chinatown!” + +“Yes, Petrie, it made me wonder, too; and we must not forget that he is +undeniably a clever scoundrel.” + +“Shall you keep any appointment which he may suggest?” + +“Undoubtedly. But I shall not wait until tomorrow.” + +“What!” + +“I propose to pay a little informal visit to Mr. Abel Slattin, +to-night.” + +“At his office?” + +“No; at his private residence. If, as I more than suspect, his object +is to draw us into some trap, he will probably report his favorable +progress to his employer to-night!” + +“Then we should have followed him!” + +Nayland Smith stood up and divested himself of the old shooting-jacket. + +“He has been followed, Petrie,” he replied, with one of his rare smiles. +“Two C.I.D. men have been watching the house all night!” + +This was entirely characteristic of my friend’s farseeing methods. + +“By the way,” I said, “you saw Eltham this morning. He will soon be +convalescent. Where, in heaven’s name, can he--” + +“Don’t be alarmed on his behalf, Petrie,” interrupted Smith. “His life +is no longer in danger.” + +I stared, stupidly. + +“No longer in danger!” + +“He received, some time yesterday, a letter, written in Chinese, upon +Chinese paper, and enclosed in an ordinary business envelope, having a +typewritten address and bearing a London postmark.” + +“Well?” + +“As nearly as I can render the message in English, it reads: ‘Although, +because you are a brave man, you would not betray your correspondent in +China, he has been discovered. He was a mandarin, and as I cannot write +the name of a traitor, I may not name him. He was executed four days +ago. I salute you and pray for your speedy recovery. Fu-Manchu.’” + +“Fu-Manchu! But it is almost certainly a trap.” + +“On the contrary, Petrie--Fu-Manchu would not have written in Chinese +unless he were sincere; and, to clear all doubt, I received a cable this +morning reporting that the Mandarin Yen-Sun-Yat was assassinated in his +own garden, in Nan-Yang, one day last week.” + + + +CHAPTER VIII. DR. FU-MANCHU STRIKES + +Together we marched down the slope of the quiet, suburban avenue; to +take pause before a small, detached house displaying the hatchet boards +of the Estate Agent. Here we found unkempt laurel bushes and acacias +run riot, from which arboreal tangle protruded the notice--“To be Let or +Sold.” + +Smith, with an alert glance to right and left, pushed open the wooden +gate and drew me in upon the gravel path. Darkness mantled all; for the +nearest street lamp was fully twenty yards beyond. + +From the miniature jungle bordering the path, a soft whistle sounded. + +“Is that Carter?” called Smith, sharply. + +A shadowy figure uprose, and vaguely I made it out for that of a man in +the unobtrusive blue serge which is the undress uniform of the Force. + +“Well?” rapped my companion. + +“Mr. Slattin returned ten minutes ago, sir,” reported the constable. “He +came in a cab which he dismissed--” + +“He has not left again?” + +“A few minutes after his return,” the man continued, “another cab came +up, and a lady alighted.” + +“A lady!” + +“The same, sir, that has called upon him before.” + +“Smith!” I whispered, plucking at his arm--“is it--” + +He half turned, nodding his head; and my heart began to throb foolishly. +For now the manner of Slattin’s campaign suddenly was revealed to me. In +our operations against the Chinese murder-group two years before, we had +had an ally in the enemy’s camp--Karamaneh the beautiful slave, whose +presence in those happenings of the past had colored the sometimes +sordid drama with the opulence of old Arabia; who had seemed a fitting +figure for the romances of Bagdad during the Caliphate--Karamaneh, whom +I had thought sincere, whose inscrutable Eastern soul I had presumed, +fatuously, to have laid bare and analyzed. + +Now, once again she was plying her old trade of go-between; professing +to reveal the secrets of Dr. Fu-Manchu, and all the time--I could not +doubt it--inveigling men into the net of this awful fisher. + +Yesterday, I had been her dupe; yesterday, I had rejoiced in my +captivity. To-day, I was not the favored one; to-day I had not been +selected recipient of her confidences--confidences sweet, seductive, +deadly: but Abel Slattin, a plausible rogue, who, in justice, should +be immured in Sing Sing, was chosen out, was enslaved by those lovely +mysterious eyes, was taking to his soul the lies which fell from those +perfect lips, triumphant in a conquest that must end in his undoing; +deeming, poor fool, that for love of him this pearl of the Orient was +about to betray her master, to resign herself a prize to the victor! + +Companioned by these bitter reflections, I had lost the remainder of the +conversation between Nayland Smith and the police officer; now, casting +off the succubus memory which threatened to obsess me, I put forth a +giant mental effort to purge my mind of this uncleanness, and became +again an active participant in the campaign against the Master--the +director of all things noxious. + +Our plans being evidently complete, Smith seized my arm, and I found +myself again out upon the avenue. He led me across the road and into the +gate of a house almost opposite. From the fact that two upper windows +were illuminated, I adduced that the servants were retiring; the other +windows were in darkness, except for one on the ground floor to the +extreme left of the building, through the lowered venetian blinds +whereof streaks of light shone out. + +“Slattin’s study!” whispered Smith. “He does not anticipate +surveillance, and you will note that the window is wide open!” + +With that my friend crossed the strip of lawn, and careless of the fact +that his silhouette must have been visible to any one passing the gate, +climbed carefully up the artificial rockery intervening, and crouched +upon the window-ledge peering into the room. + +A moment I hesitated, fearful that if I followed, I should stumble or +dislodge some of the larva blocks of which the rockery was composed. + +Then I heard that which summoned me to the attempt, whatever the cost. + +Through the open window came the sound of a musical voice--a voice +possessing a haunting accent, possessing a quality which struck upon my +heart and set it quivering as though it were a gong hung in my bosom. + +Karamaneh was speaking. + +Upon hands and knees, heedless of damage to my garments, I crawled up +beside Smith. One of the laths was slightly displaced and over this my +friend was peering in. Crouching close beside him, I peered in also. + +I saw the study of a business man, with its files, neatly arranged works +of reference, roll-top desk, and Milner safe. Before the desk, in a +revolving chair, sat Slattin. He sat half turned toward the window, +leaning back and smiling; so that I could note the gold crown which +preserved the lower left molar. In an armchair by the window, close, +very close, and sitting with her back to me, was Karamaneh! + +She, who, in my dreams, I always saw, was ever seeing, in an Eastern +dress, with gold bands about her white ankles, with jewel-laden fingers, +with jewels in her hair, wore now a fashionable costume and a hat that +could only have been produced in Paris. Karamaneh was the one Oriental +woman I had ever known who could wear European clothes; and as I watched +that exquisite profile, I thought that Delilah must have been just such +another as this, that, excepting the Empress Poppaea, history has record +of no woman, who, looking so innocent, was yet so utterly vile. + +“Yes, my dear,” Slattin was saying, and through his monocle ogling his +beautiful visitor, “I shall be ready for you to-morrow night.” + +I felt Smith start at the words. + +“There will be a sufficient number of men?” + +Karamaneh put the question in a strangely listless way. + +“My dear little girl,” replied Slattin, rising and standing looking down +at her, with his gold tooth twinkling in the lamplight, “there will be a +whole division, if a whole division is necessary.” + +He sought to take her white gloved hand, which rested upon the chair +arm; but she evaded the attempt with seeming artlessness, and stood up. +Slattin fixed his bold gaze upon her. + +“So now, give me my orders,” he said. + +“I am not prepared to do so, yet,” replied the girl, composedly; “but +now that I know you are ready, I can make my plans.” + +She glided past him to the door, avoiding his outstretched arm with an +artless art which made me writhe; for once I had been the willing victim +of all these wiles. + +“But--” began Slattin. + +“I will ring you up in less than half an hour,” said Karamaneh and +without further ceremony, she opened the door. + +I still had my eyes glued to the aperture in the blind, when Smith began +tugging at my arm. + +“Down! you fool!” he hissed harshly--“if she sees us, all is lost!” + +Realizing this, and none too soon, I turned, and rather clumsily +followed my friend. I dislodged a piece of granite in my descent; but, +fortunately, Slattin had gone out into the hall and could not well have +heard it. + +We were crouching around an angle of the house, when a flood of light +poured down the steps, and Karamaneh rapidly descended. I had a glimpse +of a dark-faced man who evidently had opened the door for her, then all +my thoughts were centered upon that graceful figure receding from me +in the direction of the avenue. She wore a loose cloak, and I saw this +fluttering for a moment against the white gate posts; then she was gone. + +Yet Smith did not move. Detaining me with his hand he crouched there +against a quick-set hedge; until, from a spot lower down the hill, +we heard the start of the cab which had been waiting. Twenty seconds +elapsed, and from some other distant spot a second cab started. + +“That’s Weymouth!” snapped Smith. “With decent luck, we should know +Fu-Manchu’s hiding-place before Slattin tells us!” + +“But--” + +“Oh! as it happens, he’s apparently playing the game.”--In the +half-light, Smith stared at me significantly--“Which makes it all the +more important,” he concluded, “that we should not rely upon his aid!” + +Those grim words were prophetic. + +My companion made no attempt to communicate with the detective (or +detectives) who shared our vigil; we took up a position close under the +lighted study window and waited--waited. + +Once, a taxi-cab labored hideously up the steep gradient of the avenue +... It was gone. The lights at the upper windows above us became +extinguished. A policeman tramped past the gateway, casually flashing +his lamp in at the opening. One by one the illuminated windows in other +houses visible to us became dull; then lived again as mirrors for the +pallid moon. In the silence, words spoken within the study were clearly +audible; and we heard someone--presumably the man who had opened the +door--inquire if his services would be wanted again that night. + +Smith inclined his head and hung over me in a tense attitude, in order +to catch Slattin’s reply. + +“Yes, Burke,” it came--“I want you to sit up until I return; I shall be +going out shortly.” + +Evidently the man withdrew at that; for a complete silence followed +which prevailed for fully half an hour. I sought cautiously to move my +cramped limbs, unlike Smith, who seeming to have sinews of piano-wire, +crouched beside me immovable, untiringly. Then loud upon the stillness, +broke the strident note of the telephone bell. + +I started, nervously, clutching at Smith’s arm. It felt hard as iron to +my grip. + +“Hullo!” I heard Slattin call--“who is speaking?... Yes, yes! This is +Mr. A. S.... I am to come at once?... I know where--yes I ... you +will meet me there?... Good!--I shall be with you in half an hour.... +Good-by!” + +Distinctly I heard the creak of the revolving office-chair as Slattin +rose; then Smith had me by the arm, and we were flying swiftly away from +the door to take up our former post around the angle of the building. +This gained: + +“He’s going to his death!” rapped Smith beside me; “but Carter has a cab +from the Yard waiting in the nearest rank. We shall follow to see where +he goes--for it is possible that Weymouth may have been thrown off the +scent; then, when we are sure of his destination, we can take a hand in +the game! We...” + +The end of the sentence was lost to me--drowned in such a frightful wave +of sound as I despair to describe. It began with a high, thin scream, +which was choked off staccato fashion; upon it followed a loud and +dreadful cry uttered with all the strength of Slattin’s lungs-- + +“Oh, God!” he cried, and again--“Oh, God!” + +This in turn merged into a sort of hysterical sobbing. + +I was on my feet now, and automatically making for the door. I had a +vague impression of Nayland Smith’s face beside me, the eyes glassy with +a fearful apprehension. Then the door was flung open, and, in the bright +light of the hall-way, I saw Slattin standing--swaying and seemingly +fighting with the empty air. + +“What is it? For God’s sake, what has happened!” reached my ears +dimly--and the man Burke showed behind his master. White-faced I saw him +to be; for now Smith and I were racing up the steps. + +Ere we could reach him, Slattin, uttering another choking cry, pitched +forward and lay half across the threshold. + +We burst into the hall, where Burke stood with both his hands raised +dazedly to his head. I could hear the sound of running feet upon the +gravel, and knew that Carter was coming to join us. + +Burke, a heavy man with a lowering, bull-dog type of face, collapsed +onto his knees beside Slattin, and began softly to laugh in little +rising peals. + +“Drop that!” snapped Smith, and grasping him by the shoulders, he sent +him spinning along the hallway, where he sank upon the bottom step of +the stairs, to sit with his outstretched fingers extended before his +face, and peering at us grotesquely through the crevices. + +There were rustlings and subdued cries from the upper part of the +house. Carter came in out of the darkness, carefully stepping over the +recumbent figure; and the three of us stood there in the lighted hall +looking down at Slattin. + +“Help us to move him back,” directed Smith, tensely; “far enough to +close the door.” + +Between us we accomplished this, and Carter fastened the door. We were +alone with the shadow of Fu-Manchu’s vengeance; for as I knelt beside +the body on the floor, a look and a touch sufficed to tell me that this +was but clay from which the spirit had fled! + +Smith met my glance as I raised my head, and his teeth came together +with a loud snap; the jaw muscles stood out prominently beneath the +dark skin; and his face was grimly set in that odd, half-despairful +expression which I knew so well but which boded so ill for whomsoever +occasioned it. + +“Dead, Petrie!--already?” + +“Lightning could have done the work no better. Can I turn him over?” + +Smith nodded. + +Together we stooped and rolled the heavy body on its back. A flood of +whispers came sibilantly from the stairway. Smith spun around rapidly, +and glared upon the group of half-dressed servants. + +“Return to your rooms!” he rapped, imperiously; “let no one come into +the hall without my orders.” + +The masterful voice had its usual result; there was a hurried retreat +to the upper landing. Burke, shaking like a man with an ague, sat on the +lower step, pathetically drumming his palms upon his uplifted knees. + +“I warned him, I warned him!” he mumbled monotonously, “I warned him, +oh, I warned him!” + +“Stand up!” shouted Smith--“stand up and come here!” + +The man, with his frightened eyes turning to right and left, and seeming +to search for something in the shadows about him, advanced obediently. + +“Have you a flask?” demanded Smith of Carter. + +The detective silently administered to Burke a stiff restorative. + +“Now,” continued Smith, “you, Petrie, will want to examine him, I +suppose?” He pointed to the body. “And in the meantime I have some +questions to put to you, my man.” + +He clapped his hand upon Burke’s shoulder. + +“My God!” Burke broke out, “I was ten yards from him when it happened!” + +“No one is accusing you,” said Smith, less harshly; “but since you were +the only witness, it is by your aid that we hope to clear the matter +up.” + +Exerting a gigantic effort to regain control of himself, Burke nodded, +watching my friend with a childlike eagerness. During the ensuing +conversation, I examined Slattin for marks of violence; and of what I +found, more anon. + +“In the first place,” said Smith, “you say that you warned him. When did +you warn him and of what?” + +“I warned him, sir, that it would come to this--” + +“That what would come to this?”’ + +“His dealings with the Chinaman!” + +“He had dealings with Chinamen?” + +“He accidentally met a Chinaman at an East End gaming-house, a man he +had known in Frisco--a man called Singapore Charlie--” + +“What! Singapore Charlie!” + +“Yes, sir, the same man that had a dope-shop, two years ago, down +Ratcliffe way--” + +“There was a fire--” + +“But Singapore Charlie escaped, sir.” + +“And he is one of the gang?” + +“He is one of what we used to call in New York, the Seven Group.” + +Smith began to tug at the lobe of his left ear, reflectively, as I saw +out of the corner of my eye. + +“The Seven Group!” he mused. “That is significant. I always suspected +that Dr. Fu-Manchu and the notorious Seven Group were one and the same. +Go on, Burke.” + +“Well, sir,” the man continued, more calmly, “the lieutenant--” + +“The lieutenant!” began Smith; then: “Oh! of course; Slattin used to be +a police lieutenant!” + +“Well, sir, he--Mr. Slattin--had a sort of hold on this Singapore +Charlie, and two years ago, when he first met him, he thought that with +his aid he was going to pull off the biggest thing of his life--” + +“Forestall me, in fact?” + +“Yes, sir; but you got in first, with the big raid and spoiled it.” + +Smith nodded grimly, glancing at the Scotland Yard man, who returned his +nod with equal grimness. + +“A couple of months ago,” resumed Burke, “he met Charlie again down +East, and the Chinaman introduced him to a girl--some sort of an +Egyptian girl.” + +“Go on!” snapped Smith--“I know her.” + +“He saw her a good many times--and she came here once or twice. She made +out that she and Singapore Charlie were prepared to give away the boss +of the Yellow gang--” + +“For a price, of course?” + +“I suppose so,” said Burke; “but I don’t know. I only know that I warned +him.” + +“H’m!” muttered Smith. “And now, what took place to-night?” + +“He had an appointment here with the girl,” began Burke + +“I know all that,” interrupted Smith. “I merely want to know, what took +place after the telephone call?” + +“Well, he told me to wait up, and I was dozing in the next room to the +study--the dining-room--when the ‘phone bell aroused me. I heard the +lieutenant--Mr. Slattin, coming out, and I ran out too, but only in time +to see him taking his hat from the rack--” + +“But he wears no hat!” + +“He never got it off the peg! Just as he reached up to take it, he gave +a most frightful scream, and turned around like lightning as though some +one had attacked him from behind!” + +“There was no one else in the hall?” + +“No one at all. I was standing down there outside the dining-room just +by the stairs, but he didn’t turn in my direction, he turned and looked +right behind him--where there was no one--nothing. His cries were +frightful.” Burke’s voice broke, and he shuddered feverishly. “Then he +made a rush for the front door. It seemed as though he had not seen me. +He stood there screaming; but, before I could reach him, he fell....” + +Nayland Smith fixed a piercing gaze upon Burke. + +“Is that all you know?” he demanded slowly. + +“As God is my judge, sir, that’s all I know, and all I saw. There was no +living thing near him when he met his death.” + +“We shall see,” muttered Smith. He turned to me--“What killed him?” he +asked, shortly. + +“Apparently, a minute wound on the left wrist,” I replied, and, +stooping, I raised the already cold hand in mine. + +A tiny, inflamed wound showed on the wrist; and a certain puffiness was +becoming observable in the injured hand and arm. Smith bent down and +drew a quick, sibilant breath. + +“You know what this is, Petrie?” he cried. + +“Certainly. It was too late to employ a ligature and useless to inject +ammonia. Death was practically instantaneous. His heart...” + +There came a loud knocking and ringing. + +“Carter!” cried Smith, turning to the detective, “open that door to no +one--no one. Explain who I am--” + +“But if it is the inspector?--” + +“I said, open the door to no one!” snapped Smith. + +“Burke, stand exactly where you are! Carter, you can speak to whoever +knocks, through the letter-box. Petrie, don’t move for your life! It may +be here, in the hallway!--” + + + +CHAPTER IX. THE CLIMBER + +Our search of the house of Abel Slattin ceased only with the coming of +the dawn, and yielded nothing but disappointment. Failure followed upon +failure; for, in the gray light of the morning, our own quest concluded, +Inspector Weymouth returned to report that the girl, Karamaneh, had +thrown him off the scent. + +Again he stood before me, the big, burly friend of old and dreadful +days, a little grayer above the temples, which I set down for a record +of former horrors, but deliberate, stoical, thorough, as ever. His blue +eyes melted in the old generous way as he saw me, and he gripped my hand +in greeting. + +“Once again,” he said, “your dark-eyed friend has been too clever for +me, Doctor. But the track as far as I could follow, leads to the old +spot. In fact,”--he turned to Smith, who, grim-faced and haggard, +looked thoroughly ill in that gray light--“I believe Fu-Manchu’s lair is +somewhere near the former opium-den of Shen-Yan--‘Singapore Charlie.’” + +Smith nodded. + +“We will turn our attention in that direction,” he replied, “at a very +early date.” + +Inspector Weymouth looked down at the body of Abel Slattin. + +“How was it done?” he asked softly. + +“Clumsily for Fu-Manchu,” I replied. “A snake was introduced into the +house by some means--” + +“By Karamaneh!” rapped Smith. + +“Very possibly by Karamaneh,” I continued firmly. “The thing has escaped +us.” + +“My own idea,” said Smith, “is that it was concealed about his clothing. +When he fell by the open door it glided out of the house. We must have +the garden searched thoroughly by daylight.” + +“He”--Weymouth glanced at that which lay upon the floor--“must be moved; +but otherwise we can leave the place untouched, clear out the servants, +and lock the house up.” + +“I have already given orders to that effect,” answered Smith. He spoke +wearily and with a note of conscious defeat in his voice. “Nothing has +been disturbed;”--he swept his arm around comprehensively--“papers and +so forth you can examine at leisure.” + +Presently we quitted that house upon which the fateful Chinaman had +set his seal, as the suburb was awakening to a new day. The clank of +milk-cans was my final impression of the avenue to which a dreadful +minister of death had come at the bidding of the death lord. We +left Inspector Weymouth in charge and returned to my rooms, scarcely +exchanging a word upon the way. + +Nayland Smith, ignoring my entreaties, composed himself for slumber in +the white cane chair in my study. About noon he retired to the bathroom, +and returning, made a pretense of breakfast; then resumed his seat in +the cane armchair. Carter reported in the afternoon, but his report was +merely formal. Returning from my round of professional visits at half +past five, I found Nayland Smith in the same position; and so the day +waned into evening, and dusk fell uneventfully. + +In the corner of the big room by the empty fireplace, Nayland Smith lay, +with his long, lean frame extended in the white cane chair. A tumbler, +from which two straws protruded, stood by his right elbow, and a perfect +continent of tobacco smoke lay between us, wafted toward the door by the +draught from an open window. He had littered the hearth with matches and +tobacco ash, being the most untidy smoker I have ever met; and save +for his frequent rapping-out of his pipe bowl and perpetual striking of +matches, he had shown no sign of activity for the past hour. Collarless +and wearing an old tweed jacket, he had spent the evening, as he had +spent the day, in the cane chair, only quitting it for some ten minutes, +or less, to toy with dinner. + +My several attempts at conversation had elicited nothing but growls; +therefore, as dusk descended, having dismissed my few patients, I +busied myself collating my notes upon the renewed activity of the Yellow +Doctor, and was thus engaged when the ‘phone bell disturbed me. It was +Smith who was wanted, however; and he went out eagerly, leaving me to my +task. + +At the end of a lengthy conversation, he returned from the ‘phone and +began, restlessly, to pace the room. I made a pretense of continuing my +labors, but covertly I was watching him. He was twitching at the lobe of +his left ear, and his face was a study in perplexity. Abruptly he burst +out: + +“I shall throw the thing up, Petrie! Either I am growing too old to cope +with such an adversary as Fu-Manchu, or else my intellect has become +dull. I cannot seem to think clearly or consistently. For the Doctor, +this crime, this removal of Slattin, is clumsy--unfinished. There are +two explanations. Either he, too, is losing his old cunning or he has +been interrupted!” + +“Interrupted!” + +“Take the facts, Petrie,”--Smith clapped his hands upon my table and +bent down, peering into my eyes--“is it characteristic of Fu-Manchu to +kill a man by the direct agency of a snake and to implicate one of his +own damnable servants in this way?” + +“But we have found no snake!” + +“Karamaneh introduced one in some way. Do you doubt it?” + +“Certainly Karamaneh visited him on the evening of his death, but you +must be perfectly well aware that even if she had been arrested, no jury +could convict her.” + +Smith resumed his restless pacings up and down. + +“You are very useful to me, Petrie,” he replied; “as a counsel for +the defense you constantly rectify my errors of prejudice. Yet I am +convinced that our presence at Slattin’s house last night prevented +Fu-Manchu from finishing off this little matter as he had designed to +do.” + +“What has given you this idea?” + +“Weymouth is responsible. He has rung me up from the Yard. The constable +on duty at the house where the murder was committed, reports that some +one, less than an hour ago, attempted to break in.” + +“Break in!” + +“Ah! you are interested? I thought the circumstance illuminating, also!” + +“Did the officer see this person?” + +“No; he only heard him. It was some one who endeavored to enter by the +bathroom window, which, I am told, may be reached fairly easily by an +agile climber.” + +“The attempt did not succeed?” + +“No; the constable interrupted, but failed to make a capture or even to +secure a glimpse of the man.” + +We were both silent for some moments; then: + +“What do you propose to do?” I asked. + +“We must not let Fu-Manchu’s servants know,” replied Smith, “but +to-night I shall conceal myself in Slattin’s house and remain there +for a week or a day--it matters not how long--until that attempt is +repeated. Quite obviously, Petrie, we have overlooked something which +implicates the murderer with the murder! In short, either by accident, +by reason of our superior vigilance, or by the clumsiness of his plans, +Fu-Manchu for once in an otherwise blameless career, has left a clue!” + + + +CHAPTER X. THE CLIMBER RETURNS + +In utter darkness we groped our way through into the hallway of +Slattin’s house, having entered, stealthily, from the rear; for Smith +had selected the study as a suitable base of operations. We reached it +without mishap, and presently I found myself seated in the very chair +which Karamaneh had occupied; my companion took up a post just within +the widely opened door. + +So we commenced our ghostly business in the house of the murdered man--a +house from which, but a few hours since, his body had been removed. This +was such a vigil as I had endured once before, when, with Nayland Smith +and another, I had waited for the coming of one of Fu-Manchu’s death +agents. + +Of all the sounds which, one by one, now began to detach themselves +from the silence, there was a particular sound, homely enough at another +time, which spoke to me more dreadfully than the rest. It was the +ticking of the clock upon the mantelpiece; and I thought how this sound +must have been familiar to Abel Slattin, how it must have formed +part and parcel of his life, as it were, and how it went on +now--tick-tick-tick-tick--whilst he, for whom it had ticked, lay +unheeding--would never heed it more. + +As I grew more accustomed to the gloom, I found myself staring at his +office chair; once I found myself expecting Abel Slattin to enter the +room and occupy it. There was a little China Buddha upon the bureau in +one corner, with a gilded cap upon its head, and as some reflection of +the moonlight sought out this little cap, my thoughts grotesquely turned +upon the murdered man’s gold tooth. + +Vague creakings from within the house, sounds as though of stealthy +footsteps upon the stair, set my nerves tingling; but Nayland Smith gave +no sign, and I knew that my imagination was magnifying these ordinary +night sounds out of all proportion to their actual significance. +Leaves rustled faintly outside the window at my back: I construed their +sibilant whispers into the dreaded name--Fu-Manchu-Fu-Manchu--Fu-Manchu! + +So wore on the night; and, when the ticking clock hollowly boomed the +hour of one, I almost leaped out of my chair, so highly strung were my +nerves, and so appallingly did the sudden clangor beat upon them. Smith, +like a man of stone, showed no sign. He was capable of so subduing his +constitutionally high-strung temperament, at times, that temporarily +he became immune from human dreads. On such occasions he would be icily +cool amid universal panic; but, his object accomplished, I have seen him +in such a state of collapse, that utter nervous exhaustion is the only +term by which I can describe it. + +Tick-tick-tick-tick went the clock, and, with my heart still thumping +noisily in my breast, I began to count the tickings; one, two, three, +four, five, and so on to a hundred, and from one hundred to many +hundreds. + +Then, out from the confusion of minor noises, a new, arresting sound +detached itself. I ceased my counting; no longer I noted the tick-tick +of the clock, nor the vague creakings, rustlings and whispers. I saw +Smith, shadowly, raise his hand in warning--in needless warning, for I +was almost holding my breath in an effort of acute listening. + +From high up in the house this new sound came from above the topmost +room, it seemed, up under the roof; a regular squeaking, oddly familiar, +yet elusive. Upon it followed a very soft and muffled thud; then a +metallic sound as of a rusty hinge in motion; then a new silence, +pregnant with a thousand possibilities more eerie than any clamor. + +My mind was rapidly at work. Lighting the topmost landing of the house +was a sort of glazed trap, evidently set in the floor of a loft-like +place extending over the entire building. Somewhere in the red-tiled +roof above, there presumably existed a corresponding skylight or +lantern. + +So I argued; and, ere I had come to any proper decision, another sound, +more intimate, came to interrupt me. + +This time I could be in no doubt; some one was lifting the trap above +the stairhead--slowly, cautiously, and all but silently. Yet to my ears, +attuned to trifling disturbances, the trap creaked and groaned noisily. + +Nayland Smith waved to me to take a stand on the other side of the +opened door--behind it, in fact, where I should be concealed from the +view of any one descending the stair. + +I stood up and crossed the floor to my new post. + +A dull thud told of the trap fully raised and resting upon some +supporting joist. A faint rustling (of discarded garments, I told +myself) spoke to my newly awakened, acute perceptions, of the visitor +preparing to lower himself to the landing. Followed a groan of woodwork +submitted to sudden strain--and the unmistakable pad of bare feet upon +the linoleum of the top corridor. + +I knew now that one of Dr. Fu-Manchu’s uncanny servants had gained the +roof of the house by some means, had broken through the skylight and had +descended by means of the trap beneath on to the landing. + +In such a tensed-up state as I cannot describe, nor, at this hour +mentally reconstruct, I waited for the creaking of the stairs which +should tell of the creature’s descent. + +I was disappointed. Removed scarce a yard from me as he was, I could +hear Nayland Smith’s soft, staccato breathing; but my eyes were all for +the darkened hallway, for the smudgy outline of the stair-rail with the +faint patterning in the background which, alone, indicated the wall. + +It was amid an utter silence, unheralded by even so slight a sound +as those which I had acquired the power of detecting--that I saw the +continuity of the smudgy line of stair-rail to be interrupted. + +A dark patch showed upon it, just within my line of sight, invisible to +Smith on the other side of the doorway, and some ten or twelve stairs +up. + +No sound reached me, but the dark patch vanished and reappeared three +feet lower down. + +Still I knew that this phantom approach must be unknown to my +companion--and I knew that it was impossible for me to advise him of it +unseen by the dreaded visitor. + +A third time the dark patch--the hand of one who, ghostly, silent, was +creeping down into the hallway--vanished and reappeared on a level with +my eyes. Then a vague shape became visible; no more than a blur upon the +dim design of the wall-paper... and Nayland Smith got his first sight of +the stranger. + +The clock on the mantelpiece boomed out the half-hour. + +At that, such was my state (I blush to relate it) I uttered a faint cry! + +It ended all secrecy--that hysterical weakness of mine. It might have +frustrated our hopes; that it did not do so was in no measure due to me. +But in a sort of passionate whirl, the ensuing events moved swiftly. + +Smith hesitated not one instant. With a panther-like leap he hurled +himself into the hall. + +“The lights, Petrie!” he cried--“the lights! The switch is near the +street-door!” + +I clenched my fists in a swift effort to regain control of my +treacherous nerves, and, bounding past Smith, and past the foot of the +stair, I reached out my hand to the switch, the situation of which, +fortunately, I knew. + +Around I came, in response to a shrill cry from behind me--an inhuman +cry, less a cry than the shriek of some enraged animal.... + +With his left foot upon the first stair, Nayland Smith stood, his lean +body bent perilously backward, his arms rigidly thrust out, and his +sinewy fingers gripping the throat of an almost naked man--a man whose +brown body glistened unctuously, whose shaven head was apish low, whose +bloodshot eyes were the eyes of a mad dog! His teeth, upper and lower, +were bared; they glistened, they gnashed, and a froth was on his lips. +With both his hands, he clutched a heavy stick, and once--twice, he +brought it down upon Nayland Smith’s head! + +I leaped forward to my friend’s aid; but as though the blows had been +those of a feather, he stood like some figure of archaic statuary, nor +for an instant relaxed the death grip which he had upon his adversary’s +throat. + +Thrusting my way up the stairs, I wrenched the stick from the hand of +the dacoit--for in this glistening brown man, I recognized one of that +deadly brotherhood who hailed Dr. Fu-Manchu their Lord and Master. + + * * * * * + +I cannot dwell upon the end of that encounter; I cannot hope to make +acceptable to my readers an account of how Nayland Smith, glassy-eyed, +and with consciousness ebbing from him instant by instant, stood there, +a realization of Leighton’s “Athlete,” his arms rigid as iron bars even +after Fu-Manchu’s servant hung limply in that frightful grip. + +In his last moments of consciousness, with the blood from his wounded +head trickling down into his eyes, he pointed to the stick which I had +torn from the grip of the dacoit, and which I still held in my hand. + +“Not Aaron’s rod, Petrie!” he gasped hoarsely--“the rod of +Moses!--Slattin’s stick!” + +Even in upon my anxiety for my friend, amazement intruded. + +“But,” I began--and turned to the rack in which Slattin’s favorite cane +at that moment reposed--had reposed at the time of his death. + +Yes!--there stood Slattin’s cane; we had not moved it; we had disturbed +nothing in that stricken house; there it stood, in company with an +umbrella and a malacca. + +I glanced at the cane in my hand. Surely there could not be two such in +the world? + +Smith collapsed on the floor at my feet. + +“Examine the one in the rack, Petrie,” he whispered, almost inaudibly, +“but do not touch it. It may not be yet....” + +I propped him up against the foot of the stairs, and as the constable +began knocking violently at the street door, crossed to the rack and +lifted out the replica of the cane which I held in my hand. + +A faint cry from Smith--and as if it had been a leprous thing, I dropped +the cane instantly. + +“Merciful God!” I groaned. + +Although, in every other particular, it corresponded with that which I +held--which I had taken from the dacoit--which he had come to substitute +for the cane now lying upon the floor--in one dreadful particular it +differed. + +Up to the snake’s head it was an accurate copy; but the head lived! + +Either from pain, fear or starvation, the thing confined in the hollow +tube of this awful duplicate was become torpid. Otherwise, no power +on earth could have saved me from the fate of Abel Slattin; for the +creature was an Australian death-adder. + + + +CHAPTER XI. THE WHITE PEACOCK + +Nayland Smith wasted no time in pursuing the plan of campaign which he +had mentioned to Inspector Weymouth. Less than forty-eight hours after +quitting the house of the murdered Slattin, I found myself bound along +Whitechapel Road upon strange enough business. + +A very fine rain was falling, which rendered it difficult to see clearly +from the windows; but the weather apparently had little effect upon the +commercial activities of the district. The cab was threading a hazardous +way through the cosmopolitan throng crowding the street. On either side +of me extended a row of stalls, seemingly established in opposition to +the more legitimate shops upon the inner side of the pavement. + +Jewish hawkers, many of them in their shirt-sleeves, acclaimed the +rarity of the bargains which they had to offer; and, allowing for the +difference of costume, these tireless Israelites, heedless of climatic +conditions, sweating at their mongery, might well have stood, not in a +squalid London thoroughfare, but in an equally squalid market-street of +the Orient. + +They offered linen and fine raiment; from footgear to hair-oil their +wares ranged. They enlivened their auctioneering with conjuring tricks +and witty stories, selling watches by the aid of legerdemain, and fancy +vests by grace of a seasonable anecdote. + +Poles, Russians, Serbs, Roumanians, Jews of Hungary, and Italians +of Whitechapel mingled in the throng. Near East and Far East rubbed +shoulders. Pidgin English contested with Yiddish for the ownership of +some tawdry article offered by an auctioneer whose nationality defied +conjecture, save that always some branch of his ancestry had drawn +nourishment from the soil of Eternal Judea. + +Some wearing mens’ caps, some with shawls thrown over their oily locks, +and some, more true to primitive instincts, defying, bare-headed, the +unkindly elements, bedraggled women--more often than not burdened with +muffled infants--crowded the pavements and the roadway, thronged about +the stalls like white ants about some choicer carrion. + +And the fine drizzling rain fell upon all alike, pattering upon the hood +of the taxi-cab, trickling down the front windows; glistening upon the +unctuous hair of those in the street who were hatless; dewing the bare +arms of the auctioneers, and dripping, melancholy, from the tarpaulin +coverings of the stalls. Heedless of the rain above and of the mud +beneath, North, South, East, and West mingled their cries, their bids, +their blandishments, their raillery, mingled their persons in that +joyless throng. + +Sometimes a yellow face showed close to one of the streaming windows; +sometimes a black-eyed, pallid face, but never a face wholly sane and +healthy. This was an underworld where squalor and vice went hand in hand +through the beautiless streets, a melting-pot of the world’s outcasts; +this was the shadowland, which last night had swallowed up Nayland +Smith. + +Ceaselessly I peered to right and left, searching amid that rain-soaked +company for any face known to me. Whom I expected to find there, I know +not, but I should have counted it no matter for surprise had I detected +amid that ungracious ugliness the beautiful face of Karamaneh the +Eastern slave-girl, the leering yellow face of a Burmese dacoit, the +gaunt, bronzed features of Nayland Smith; a hundred times I almost +believed that I had seen the ruddy countenance of Inspector Weymouth, +and once (at which instant my heart seemed to stand still) I suffered +from the singular delusion that the oblique green eyes of Dr. Fu-Manchu +peered out from the shadows between two stalls. + +It was mere phantasy, of course, the sick imaginings of a mind +overwrought. I had not slept and had scarcely tasted food for more +than thirty hours; for, following up a faint clue supplied by Burke, +Slattin’s man, and, like his master, an ex-officer of New York Police, +my friend, Nayland Smith, on the previous evening had set out in quest +of some obscene den where the man called Shen-Yan--former keeper of an +opium-shop--was now said to be in hiding. + +Shen-Yan we knew to be a creature of the Chinese doctor, and only a most +urgent call had prevented me from joining Smith upon this promising, +though hazardous expedition. + +At any rate, Fate willing it so, he had gone without me; and +now--although Inspector Weymouth, assisted by a number of C. I. D. men, +was sweeping the district about me--to the time of my departure nothing +whatever had been heard of Smith. The ordeal of waiting finally had +proved too great to be borne. With no definite idea of what I proposed +to do, I had thrown myself into the search, filled with such dreadful +apprehensions as I hope never again to experience. + +I did not know the exact situation of the place to which Smith was gone, +for owing to the urgent case which I have mentioned, I had been absent +at the time of his departure; nor could Scotland Yard enlighten me +upon this point. Weymouth was in charge of the case--under Smith’s +direction--and since the inspector had left the Yard, early that +morning, he had disappeared as completely as Smith, no report having +been received from him. + +As my driver turned into the black mouth of a narrow, ill-lighted +street, and the glare and clamor of the greater thoroughfare died behind +me, I sank into the corner of the cab burdened with such a sense of +desolation as mercifully comes but rarely. + +We were heading now for that strange settlement off the West India Dock +Road, which, bounded by Limehouse Causeway and Pennyfields, and narrowly +confined within four streets, composes an unique Chinatown, a miniature +of that at Liverpool, and of the greater one in San Francisco. Inspired +with an idea which promised hopefully, I raised the speaking tube. + +“Take me first to the River Police Station,” I directed; “along +Ratcliffe Highway.” + +The man turned and nodded comprehendingly, as I could see through the +wet pane. + +Presently we swerved to the right and into an even narrower street. This +inclined in an easterly direction, and proved to communicate with a wide +thoroughfare along which passed brilliantly lighted electric trams. I +had lost all sense of direction, and when, swinging to the left and to +the right again, I looked through the window and perceived that we were +before the door of the Police Station, I was dully surprised. + +In quite mechanical fashion I entered the depot. Inspector Ryman, our +associate in one of the darkest episodes of the campaign with the Yellow +Doctor two years before, received me in his office. + +By a negative shake of the head, he answered my unspoken question. + +“The ten o’clock boat is lying off the Stone Stairs, Doctor,” he said, +“and co-operating with some of the Scotland Yard men who are dragging +that district--” + +I shuddered at the word “dragging”; Ryman had not used it literally, but +nevertheless it had conjured up a dread possibility--a possibility in +accordance with the methods of Dr. Fu-Manchu. All within space of an +instant I saw the tide of Limehouse Reach, the Thames lapping about +the green-coated timbers of a dock pier; and rising--falling--sometimes +disclosing to the pallid light a rigid hand, sometimes a horribly +bloated face--I saw the body of Nayland Smith at the mercy of those oily +waters. Ryman continued: + +“There is a launch out, too, patrolling the riverside from here to +Tilbury. Another lies at the breakwater”--he jerked his thumb over his +shoulder. “Should you care to take a run down and see for yourself?” + +“No, thanks,” I replied, shaking my head. “You are doing all that can be +done. Can you give me the address of the place to which Mr. Smith went +last night?” + +“Certainly,” said Ryman; “I thought you knew it. You remember Shen-Yan’s +place--by Limehouse Basin? Well, further east--east of the Causeway, +between Gill Street and Three Colt Street--is a block of wooden +buildings. You recall them?” + +“Yes,” I replied. “Is the man established there again, then?” + +“It appears so, but, although you have evidently not been informed of +the fact, Weymouth raided the establishment in the early hours of this +morning!” + +“Well?” I cried. + +“Unfortunately with no result,” continued the inspector. “The notorious +Shen-Yan was missing, and although there is no real doubt that the place +is used as a gaming-house, not a particle of evidence to that effect +could be obtained. Also--there was no sign of Mr. Nayland Smith, and no +sign of the American, Burke, who had led him to the place.” + +“Is it certain that they went there?” + +“Two C. I. D. men who were shadowing, actually saw the pair of them +enter. A signal had been arranged, but it was never given; and at about +half past four, the place was raided.” + +“Surely some arrests were made?” + +“But there was no evidence!” cried Ryman. “Every inch of the rat-burrow +was searched. The Chinese gentleman who posed as the proprietor of what +he claimed to be a respectable lodging-house offered every facility to +the police. What could we do?” + +“I take it that the place is being watched?” + +“Certainly,” said Ryman. “Both from the river and from the shore. Oh! +they are not there! God knows where they are, but they are not there!” + +I stood for a moment in silence, endeavoring to determine my course; +then, telling Ryman that I hoped to see him later, I walked out slowly +into the rain and mist, and nodding to the taxi-driver to proceed to our +original destination, I re-entered the cab. + +As we moved off, the lights of the River Police depot were swallowed up +in the humid murk, and again I found myself being carried through the +darkness of those narrow streets, which, like a maze, hold secret within +their labyrinth mysteries as great, and at least as foul, as that of +Pasiphae. + +The marketing centers I had left far behind me; to my right stretched +the broken range of riverside buildings, and beyond them flowed the +Thames, a stream more heavily burdened with secrets than ever was Tiber +or Tigris. On my left, occasional flickering lights broke through the +mist, for the most part the lights of taverns; and saving these rents +in the veil, the darkness was punctuated with nothing but the faint and +yellow luminance of the street lamps. + +Ahead was a black mouth, which promised to swallow me up as it had +swallowed up my friend. + +In short, what with my lowered condition and consequent frame of mind, +and what with the traditions, for me inseparable from that gloomy +quarter of London, I was in the grip of a shadowy menace which at any +moment might become tangible--I perceived, in the most commonplace +objects, the yellow hand of Dr. Fu-Manchu. + +When the cab stopped in a place of utter darkness, I aroused myself with +an effort, opened the door, and stepped out into the mud of a narrow +lane. A high brick wall frowned upon me from one side, and, dimly +perceptible, there towered a smoke stack, beyond. On my right uprose +the side of a wharf building, shadowly, and some distance ahead, almost +obscured by the drizzling rain, a solitary lamp flickered. I turned up +the collar of my raincoat, shivering, as much at the prospect as from +physical chill. + +“You will wait here,” I said to the man; and, feeling in my +breast-pocket, I added: “If you hear the note of a whistle, drive on and +rejoin me.” + +He listened attentively and with a certain eagerness. I had selected +him that night for the reason that he had driven Smith and myself +on previous occasions and had proved himself a man of intelligence. +Transferring a Browning pistol from my hip-pocket to that of my +raincoat, I trudged on into the mist. + +The headlights of the taxi were swallowed up behind me, and just abreast +of the street lamp I stood listening. + +Save for the dismal sound of rain, and the trickling of water along the +gutters, all about me was silent. Sometimes this silence would be broken +by the distant, muffled note of a steam siren; and always, forming +a sort of background to the near stillness, was the remote din of +riverside activity. + +I walked on to the corner just beyond the lamp. This was the street in +which the wooden buildings were situated. I had expected to detect some +evidences of surveillances, but if any were indeed being observed, the +fact was effectively masked. Not a living creature was visible, peer as +I could. + +Plans, I had none, and perceiving that the street was empty, and that +no lights showed in any of the windows, I passed on, only to find that I +had entered a cul-de-sac. + +A rickety gate gave access to a descending flight of stone steps, the +bottom invisible in the denser shadows of an archway, beyond which, I +doubted not, lay the river. + +Still uninspired by any definite design, I tried the gate and found that +it was unlocked. Like some wandering soul, as it has since seemed to +me, I descended. There was a lamp over the archway, but the glass was +broken, and the rain apparently had extinguished the light; as I passed +under it, I could hear the gas whistling from the burner. + +Continuing my way, I found myself upon a narrow wharf with the Thames +flowing gloomily beneath me. A sort of fog hung over the river, shutting +me in. Then came an incident. + +Suddenly, quite near, there arose a weird and mournful cry--a cry +indescribable, and inexpressibly uncanny! + +I started back so violently that how I escaped falling into the river +I do not know to this day. That cry, so eerie and so wholly unexpected, +had unnerved me; and realizing the nature of my surroundings, and the +folly of my presence alone in such a place, I began to edge back toward +the foot of the steps, away from the thing that cried; when--a great +white shape uprose like a phantom before me!... + +There are few men, I suppose, whose lives have been crowded with so many +eerie happenings as mine, but this phantom thing which grew out of the +darkness, which seemed about to envelope me, takes rank in my memory +amongst the most fearsome apparitions which I have witnessed. + +I knew that I was frozen with a sort of supernatural terror. I stood +there with hands clenched, staring--staring at that white shape, which +seemed to float. + +As I stared, every nerve in my body thrilling, I distinguished the +outline of the phantom. With a subdued cry, I stepped forward. A new +sensation claimed me. In that one stride I passed from the horrible to +the bizarre. + +I found myself confronted with something tangible, certainly, but +something whose presence in that place was utterly extravagant--could +only be reconcilable in the dreams of an opium slave. + +Was I awake, was I sane? Awake and sane beyond doubt, but surely +moving, not in the purlieus of Limehouse, but in the fantastic realms of +fairyland. + +Swooping, with open arms, I rounded up in an angle against the building +and gathered in this screaming thing which had inspired in me so keen a +terror. + +The great, ghostly fan was closed as I did so, and I stumbled back +toward the stair with my struggling captive tucked under my arm; I +mounted into one of London’s darkest slums, carrying a beautiful white +peacock! + + + +CHAPTER XII. DARK EYES LOOKED INTO MINE + +My adventure had done nothing to relieve the feeling of unreality which +held me enthralled. Grasping the struggling bird firmly by the body, and +having the long white tail fluttering a yard or so behind me, I returned +to where the taxi waited. + +“Open the door!” I said to the man--who greeted me with such a stare of +amazement that I laughed outright, though my mirth was but hollow. + +He jumped into the road and did as I directed. Making sure that both +windows were closed, I thrust the peacock into the cab and shut the door +upon it. + +“For God’s sake, sir!” began the driver-- + +“It has probably escaped from some collector’s place on the riverside,” + I explained, “but one never knows. See that it does not escape again, +and if at the end of an hour, as arranged, you do not hear from me, take +it back with you to the River Police Station.” + +“Right you are, sir,” said the man, remounting his seat. “It’s the first +time I ever saw a peacock in Limehouse!” + +It was the first time I had seen one, and the incident struck me as +being more than odd; it gave me an idea, and a new, faint hope. I +returned to the head of the steps, at the foot of which I had met with +this singular experience, and gazed up at the dark building beneath +which they led. Three windows were visible, but they were broken and +neglected. One, immediately above the arch, had been pasted up with +brown paper, and this was now peeling off in the rain, a little stream +of which trickled down from the detached corner to drop, drearily, upon +the stone stairs beneath. + +Where were the detectives? I could only assume that they had directed +their attention elsewhere, for had the place not been utterly deserted, +surely I had been challenged. + +In pursuit of my new idea, I again descended the steps. The persuasion +(shortly to be verified) that I was close upon the secret hold of the +Chinaman, grew stronger, unaccountably. I had descended some eight +steps, and was at the darkest part of the archway or tunnel, when +confirmation of my theories came to me. + +A noose settled accurately upon my shoulders, was snatched tightly about +my throat, and with a feeling of insupportable agony at the base of +my skull, and a sudden supreme knowledge that I was being +strangled--hanged--I lost consciousness! + +How long I remained unconscious, I was unable to determine at the time, +but I learned later, that it was for no more than half an hour; at any +rate, recovery was slow. + +The first sensation to return to me was a sort of repetition of +the asphyxia. The blood seemed to be forcing itself into my eyes--I +choked--I felt that my end was come. And, raising my hands to my throat, +I found it to be swollen and inflamed. Then the floor upon which I lay +seemed to be rocking like the deck of a ship, and I glided back again +into a place of darkness and forgetfulness. + +My second awakening was heralded by a returning sense of smell; for I +became conscious of a faint, exquisite perfume. + +It brought me to my senses as nothing else could have done, and I sat +upright with a hoarse cry. I could have distinguished that perfume amid +a thousand others, could have marked it apart from the rest in a scent +bazaar. For me it had one meaning, and one meaning only--Karamaneh. + +She was near to me, or had been near to me! + +And in the first moments of my awakening, I groped about in the darkness +blindly seeking her. + +Then my swollen throat and throbbing head, together with my utter +inability to move my neck even slightly, reminded me of the facts as +they were. I knew in that bitter moment that Karamaneh was no longer my +friend; but, for all her beauty and charm, was the most heartless, the +most fiendish creature in the service of Dr. Fu-Manchu. I groaned aloud +in my despair and misery. + +Something stirred, near to me in the room, and set my nerves creeping +with a new apprehension. I became fully alive to the possibilities of +the darkness. + +To my certain knowledge, Dr. Fu-Manchu at this time had been in England +for fully three months, which meant that by now he must be equipped with +all the instruments of destruction, animate and inanimate, which dread +experience had taught me to associate with him. + +Now, as I crouched there in that dark apartment listening for a +repetition of the sound, I scarcely dared to conjecture what might have +occasioned it, but my imagination peopled the place with reptiles which +writhed upon the floor, with tarantulas and other deadly insects which +crept upon the walls, which might drop upon me from the ceiling at any +moment. + +Then, since nothing stirred about me, I ventured to move, turning my +shoulders, for I was unable to move my aching head; and I looked in the +direction from which a faint, very faint, light proceeded. + +A regular tapping sound now began to attract my attention, and, having +turned about, I perceived that behind me was a broken window, in places +patched with brown paper; the corner of one sheet of paper was detached, +and the rain trickled down upon it with a rhythmical sound. + +In a flash I realized that I lay in the room immediately above the +archway; and listening intently, I perceived above the other faint +sounds of the night, or thought that I perceived, the hissing of the gas +from the extinguished lamp-burner. + +Unsteadily I rose to my feet, but found myself swaying like a drunken +man. I reached out for support, stumbling in the direction of the wall. +My foot came in contact with something that lay there, and I pitched +forward and fell.... + +I anticipated a crash which would put an end to my hopes of escape, but +my fall was comparatively noiseless--for I fell upon the body of a man +who lay bound up with rope close against the wall! + +A moment I stayed as I fell, the chest of my fellow captive rising and +falling beneath me as he breathed. Knowing that my life depended +upon retaining a firm hold upon myself, I succeeded in overcoming the +dizziness and nausea which threatened to drown my senses, and, moving +back so that I knelt upon the floor, I fumbled in my pocket for the +electric lamp which I had placed there. My raincoat had been removed +whilst I was unconscious, and with it my pistol, but the lamp was +untouched. + +I took it out, pressed the button, and directed the ray upon the face of +the man beside me. + +It was Nayland Smith! + +Trussed up and fastened to a ring in the wall he lay, having a cork gag +strapped so tightly between his teeth that I wondered how he had escaped +suffocation. + +But, although a grayish pallor showed through the tan of his skin, his +eyes were feverishly bright, and there, as I knelt beside him, I thanked +heaven, silently but fervently. + +Then, in furious haste, I set to work to remove the gag. It was most +ingeniously secured by means of leather straps buckled at the back of +his head, but I unfastened these without much difficulty, and he spat +out the gag, uttering an exclamation of disgust. + +“Thank God, old man!” he said, huskily. “Thank God that you are alive! I +saw them drag you in, and I thought...” + +“I have been thinking the same about you for more than twenty-four +hours,” I said, reproachfully. “Why did you start without--” + +“I did not want you to come, Petrie,” he replied. “I had a sort of +premonition. You see it was realized; and instead of being as helpless +as I, Fate has made you the instrument of my release. Quick! You have a +knife? Good!” The old, feverish energy was by no means extinguished +in him. “Cut the ropes about my wrists and ankles, but don’t otherwise +disturb them--” + +I set to work eagerly. + +“Now,” Smith continued, “put that filthy gag in place again--but you +need not strap it so tightly! Directly they find that you are alive, +they will treat you the same--you understand? She has been here three +times--” + +“Karamaneh?”... + +“Ssh!” + +I heard a sound like the opening of a distant door. + +“Quick! the straps of the gag!” whispered Smith, “and pretend to recover +consciousness just as they enter--” + +Clumsily I followed his directions, for my fingers were none too steady, +replaced the lamp in my pocket, and threw myself upon the floor. + +Through half-shut eyes, I saw the door open and obtained a glimpse of +a desolate, empty passage beyond. On the threshold stood Karamaneh. She +held in her hand a common tin oil lamp which smoked and flickered with +every movement, filling the already none too cleanly air with an odor of +burning paraffin. She personified the outre; nothing so incongruous as +her presence in that place could well be imagined. She was dressed as I +remembered once to have seen her two years before, in the gauzy silks of +the harem. There were pearls glittering like great tears amid the cloud +of her wonderful hair. She wore broad gold bangles upon her bare arms, +and her fingers were laden with jewelry. A heavy girdle swung from her +hips, defining the lines of her slim shape, and about one white ankle +was a gold band. + +As she appeared in the doorway I almost entirely closed my eyes, but my +gaze rested fascinatedly upon the little red slippers which she wore. + +Again I detected the exquisite, elusive perfume, which, like a breath +of musk, spoke of the Orient; and, as always, it played havoc with my +reason, seeming to intoxicate me as though it were the very essence of +her loveliness. + +But I had a part to play, and throwing out one clenched hand so that my +fist struck upon the floor, I uttered a loud groan, and made as if to +rise upon my knees. + +One quick glimpse I had of her wonderful eyes, widely opened and turned +upon me with such an enigmatical expression as set my heart leaping +wildly--then, stepping back, Karamaneh placed the lamp upon the boards +of the passage and clapped her hands. + +As I sank upon the floor in assumed exhaustion, a Chinaman with +a perfectly impassive face, and a Burman, whose pock-marked, evil +countenance was set in an apparently habitual leer, came running into +the room past the girl. + +With a hand which trembled violently, she held the lamp whilst the two +yellow ruffians tied me. I groaned and struggled feebly, fixing my gaze +upon the lamp-bearer in a silent reproach which was by no means without +its effect. + +She lowered her eyes, and I could see her biting her lip, whilst the +color gradually faded from her cheeks. Then, glancing up again quickly, +and still meeting that reproachful stare, she turned her head aside +altogether, and rested one hand upon the wall, swaying slightly as she +did so. + +It was a singular ordeal for more than one of that incongruous group; +but in order that I may not be charged with hypocrisy or with seeking +to hide my own folly, I confess, here, that when again I found myself +in darkness, my heart was leaping not because of the success of my +strategy, but because of the success of that reproachful glance which +I had directed toward the lovely, dark-eyed Karamaneh, toward the +faithless, evil Karamaneh! So much for myself. + +The door had not been closed ten seconds, ere Smith again was spitting +out the gag, swearing under his breath, and stretching his cramped limbs +free from their binding. Within a minute from the time of my trussing, +I was a free man again; save that look where I would--to right, to left, +or inward, to my own conscience--two dark eyes met mine, enigmatically. + +“What now?” I whispered. + +“Let me think,” replied Smith. “A false move would destroy us.” + +“How long have you been here?” + +“Since last night.” + +“Is Fu-Manchu--” + +“Fu-Manchu is here!” replied Smith, grimly--“and not only Fu-Manchu, +but--another.” + +“Another!” + +“A higher than Fu-Manchu, apparently. I have an idea of the identity of +this person, but no more than an idea. Something unusual is going on, +Petrie; otherwise I should have been a dead man twenty-four hours +ago. Something even more important than my death engages Fu-Manchu’s +attention--and this can only be the presence of the mysterious visitor. +Your seductive friend, Karamaneh, is arrayed in her very becoming +national costume in his honor, I presume.” He stopped abruptly; then +added: “I would give five hundred pounds for a glimpse of that visitor’s +face!” + +“Is Burke--” + +“God knows what has become of Burke, Petrie! We were both caught napping +in the establishment of the amiable Shen-Yan, where, amid a very mixed +company of poker players, we were losing our money like gentlemen.” + +“But Weymouth--” + +“Burke and I had both been neatly sand-bagged, my dear Petrie, and +removed elsewhere, some hours before Weymouth raided the gaming-house. +Oh! I don’t know how they smuggled us away with the police watching the +place; but my presence here is sufficient evidence of the fact. Are you +armed?” + +“No; my pistol was in my raincoat, which is missing.” + +In the dim light from the broken window, I could see Smith tugging +reflectively at the lobe of his left ear. + +“I am without arms, too,” he mused. “We might escape from the window--” + +“It’s a long drop!” + +“Ah! I imagined so. If only I had a pistol, or a revolver--” + +“What should you do?” + +“I should present myself before the important meeting, which, I am +assured, is being held somewhere in this building; and to-night would +see the end of my struggle with the Fu-Manchu group--the end of the +whole Yellow menace! For not only is Fu-Manchu here, Petrie, with all +his gang of assassins, but he whom I believe to be the real head of the +group--a certain mandarin--is here also!” + + + +CHAPTER XIII. THE SACRED ORDER + +Smith stepped quietly across the room and tried the door. It proved to +be unlocked, and an instant later, we were both outside in the passage. +Coincident with our arrival there, arose a sudden outcry from some place +at the westward end. A high-pitched, grating voice, in which guttural +notes alternated with a serpent-like hissing, was raised in anger. + +“Dr. Fu-Manchu!” whispered Smith, grasping my arm. + +Indeed, it was the unmistakable voice of the Chinaman, raised +hysterically in one of those outbursts which in the past I had diagnosed +as symptomatic of dangerous mania. + +The voice rose to a scream, the scream of some angry animal rather than +anything human. Then, chokingly, it ceased. Another short sharp cry +followed--but not in the voice of Fu-Manchu--a dull groan, and the sound +of a fall. + +With Smith still grasping my wrist, I shrank back into the doorway, as +something that looked in the darkness like a great ball of fluff came +rapidly along the passage toward me. Just at my feet the thing stopped +and I made it out for a small animal. The tiny, gleaming eyes looked up +at me, and, chattering wickedly, the creature bounded past and was lost +from view. + +It was Dr. Fu-Manchu’s marmoset. + +Smith dragged me back into the room which we had just left. As he partly +reclosed the door, I heard the clapping of hands. In a condition of +most dreadful suspense, we waited; until a new, ominous sound proclaimed +itself. Some heavy body was being dragged into the passage. I heard the +opening of a trap. Exclamations in guttural voices told of a heavy task +in progress; there was a great straining and creaking--whereupon the +trap was softly reclosed. + +Smith bent to my ear. + +“Fu-Manchu has chastised one of his servants,” he whispered. “There will +be food for the grappling-irons to-night!” + +I shuddered violently, for, without Smith’s words, I knew that a bloody +deed had been done in that house within a few yards of where we stood. + +In the new silence, I could hear the drip, drip, drip of the rain +outside the window; then a steam siren hooted dismally upon the river, +and I thought how the screw of that very vessel, even as we listened, +might be tearing the body of Fu-Manchu’s servant! + +“Have you some one waiting?” whispered Smith, eagerly. + +“How long was I insensible?” + +“About half an hour.” + +“Then the cabman will be waiting.” + +“Have you a whistle with you?” + +I felt in my coat pocket. + +“Yes,” I reported. + +“Good! Then we will take a chance.” + +Again we slipped out into the passage and began a stealthy progress +to the west. Ten paces amid absolute darkness, and we found ourselves +abreast of a branch corridor. At the further end, through a kind of +little window, a dim light shone. + +“See if you can find the trap,” whispered Smith; “light your lamp.” + +I directed the ray of the pocket-lamp upon the floor, and there at my +feet was a square wooden trap. As I stooped to examine it, I glanced +back, painfully, over my shoulder--and saw Nayland Smith tiptoeing away +from me along the passage toward the light! + +Inwardly I cursed his folly, but the temptation to peep in at that +little window proved too strong for me, as it had proved too strong for +him. + +Fearful that some board would creak beneath my tread, I followed; and +side by side we two crouched, looking into a small rectangular room. It +was a bare and cheerless apartment with unpapered walls and carpetless +floor. A table and a chair constituted the sole furniture. + +Seated in the chair, with his back toward us, was a portly Chinaman who +wore a yellow, silken robe. His face, it was impossible to see; but he +was beating his fist upon the table, and pouring out a torrent of words +in a thin, piping voice. So much I perceived at a glance; then, into +view at the distant end of the room, paced a tall, high-shouldered +figure--a figure unforgettable, at once imposing and dreadful, stately +and sinister. + +With the long, bony hands behind him, fingers twining and intertwining +serpentinely about the handle of a little fan, and with the pointed chin +resting on the breast of the yellow robe, so that the light from the +lamp swinging in the center of the ceiling gleamed upon the great, +dome-like brow, this tall man paced somberly from left to right. + +He cast a sidelong, venomous glance at the voluble speaker out of +half-shut eyes; in the act they seemed to light up as with an internal +luminance; momentarily they sparkled like emeralds; then their +brilliance was filmed over as in the eyes of a bird when the membrane is +lowered. + +My blood seemed to chill, and my heart to double its pulsations; +beside me Smith was breathing more rapidly than usual. I knew now +the explanation of the feeling which had claimed me when first I had +descended the stone stairs. I knew what it was that hung like a miasma +over that house. It was the aura, the glamour, which radiated from this +wonderful and evil man as light radiates from radium. It was the vril, +the force, of Dr. Fu-Manchu. + +I began to move away from the window. But Smith held my wrist as in a +vise. He was listening raptly to the torrential speech of the Chinaman +who sat in the chair; and I perceived in his eyes the light of a sudden +comprehension. + +As the tall figure of the Chinese doctor came pacing into view again, +Smith, his head below the level of the window, pushed me gently along +the passage. + +Regaining the site of the trap, he whispered to me: “We owe our lives, +Petrie, to the national childishness of the Chinese! A race of ancestor +worshipers is capable of anything, and Dr. Fu-Manchu, the dreadful being +who has rained terror upon Europe stands in imminent peril of disgrace +for having lost a decoration.” + +“What do you mean, Smith?” + +“I mean that this is no time for delay, Petrie! Here, unless I am +greatly mistaken, lies the rope by means of which you made your +entrance. It shall be the means of your exit. Open the trap!” + +Handling the lamp to Smith, I stooped and carefully raised the +trap-door. At which moment, a singular and dramatic thing happened. + +A softly musical voice--the voice of my dreams!--spoke. + +“Not that way! O God, not that way!” + +In my surprise and confusion I all but let the trap fall, but I retained +sufficient presence of mind to replace it gently. Standing upright, I +turned... and there, with her little jeweled hand resting upon Smith’s +arm, stood Karamaneh! + +In all my experience of him, I had never seen Nayland Smith so utterly +perplexed. Between anger, distrust and dismay, he wavered; and each +passing emotion was written legibly upon the lean bronzed features. +Rigid with surprise, he stared at the beautiful face of the girl. She, +although her hand still rested upon Smith’s arm, had her dark eyes +turned upon me with that same enigmatical expression. Her lips were +slightly parted, and her breast heaved tumultuously. + +This ten seconds of silence in which we three stood looking at one +another encompassed the whole gamut of human emotion. The silence was +broken by Karamaneh. + +“They will be coming back that way!” she whispered, bending eagerly +toward me. (How, in the most desperate moments, I loved to listen to +that odd, musical accent!) “Please, if you would save your life, and +spare mine, trust me!”--She suddenly clasped her hands together and +looked up into my face, passionately--“Trust me--just for once--and I +will show you the way!” + +Nayland Smith never removed his gaze from her for a moment, nor did he +stir. + +“Oh!” she whispered, tremulously, and stamped one little red slipper +upon the floor. “Won’t you heed me? Come, or it will be too late!” + +I glanced anxiously at my friend; the voice of Dr. Fu-Manchu, now raised +in anger, was audible above the piping tones of the other Chinaman. +And as I caught Smith’s eye, in silent query--the trap at my feet began +slowly to lift! + +Karamaneh stifled a little sobbing cry; but the warning came too late. +A hideous yellow face with oblique squinting eyes, appeared in the +aperture. + +I found myself inert, useless; I could neither think nor act. Nayland +Smith, however, as if instinctively, delivered a pitiless kick at the +head protruding above the trap. + +A sickening crushing sound, with a sort of muffled snap, spoke of a +broken jaw-bone; and with no word or cry, the Chinaman fell. As the trap +descended with a bang, I heard the thud of his body on the stone stairs +beneath. + +But we were lost. Karamaneh fled along one of the passages lightly as a +bird, and disappeared as Dr. Fu-Manchu, his top lip drawn up above his +teeth in the manner of an angry jackal, appeared from the other. + +“This way!” cried Smith, in a voice that rose almost to a shriek--“this +way!”--and he led toward the room overhanging the steps. + +Off we dashed with panic swiftness, only to find that this retreat also +was cut off. Dimly visible in the darkness was a group of yellow men, +and despite the gloom, the curved blades of the knives which they +carried glittered menacingly. The passage was full of dacoits! + +Smith and I turned, together. The trap was raised again, and the Burman, +who had helped to tie me, was just scrambling up beside Dr. Fu-Manchu, +who stood there watching us, a shadowy, sinister figure. + +“The game’s up, Petrie!” muttered Smith. “It has been a long fight, but +Fu-Manchu wins!” + +“Not entirely!” I cried. I whipped the police whistle from my pocket, +and raised it to my lips; but brief as the interval had been, the +dacoits were upon me. + +A sinewy brown arm shot over my shoulder and the whistle was dashed from +my grasp. Then came a whirl of maelstrom fighting with Smith and myself +ever sinking lower amid a whirlpool, as it seemed, of blood-lustful +eyes, yellow fangs, and gleaming blades. + +I had some vague idea that the rasping voice of Fu-Manchu broke once +through the turmoil, and when, with my wrists tied behind me, I emerged +from the strife to find myself lying beside Smith in the passage, I +could only assume that the Chinaman had ordered his bloody servants to +take us alive; for saving numerous bruises and a few superficial cuts, I +was unwounded. + +The place was utterly deserted again, and we two panting captives found +ourselves alone with Dr. Fu-Manchu. The scene was unforgettable; that +dimly lighted passage, its extremities masked in shadow, and the tall, +yellow-robed figure of the Satanic Chinaman towering over us where we +lay. + +He had recovered his habitual calm, and as I peered at him through the +gloom I was impressed anew with the tremendous intellectual force of the +man. He had the brow of a genius, the features of a born ruler; and even +in that moment I could find time to search my memory, and to discover +that the face, saving the indescribable evil of its expression, was +identical with that of Seti, the mighty Pharaoh who lies in the Cairo +Museum. + +Down the passage came leaping and gamboling the doctor’s marmoset. +Uttering its shrill, whistling cry, it leaped onto his shoulder, +clutched with its tiny fingers at the scanty, neutral-colored hair +upon his crown, and bent forward, peering grotesquely into that still, +dreadful face. + +Dr. Fu-Manchu stroked the little creature; and crooned to it, as a +mother to her infant. Only this crooning, and the labored breathing of +Smith and myself, broke that impressive stillness. + +Suddenly the guttural voice began: + +“You come at an opportune time, Mr. Commissioner Nayland Smith, and +Dr. Petrie; at a time when the greatest man in China flatters me with +a visit. In my absence from home, a tremendous honor has been conferred +upon me, and, in the hour of this supreme honor, dishonor and calamity +have befallen! For my services to China--the New China, the China of the +future--I have been admitted by the Sublime Prince to the Sacred Order +of the White Peacock.” + +Warming to his discourse, he threw wide his arms, hurling the chattering +marmoset fully five yards along the corridor. + +“O god of Cathay!” he cried, sibilantly, “in what have I sinned that +this catastrophe has been visited upon my head! Learn, my two dear +friends, that the sacred white peacock brought to these misty shores for +my undying glory, has been lost to me! Death is the penalty of such a +sacrilege; death shall be my lot, since death I deserve.” + +Covertly Smith nudged me with his elbow. I knew what the nudge was +designed to convey; he would remind me of his words--anent the childish +trifles which sway the life of intellectual China. + +Personally, I was amazed. That Fu-Manchu’s anger, grief, sorrow and +resignation were real, no one watching him, and hearing his voice, could +doubt. + +He continued: + +“By one deed, and one deed alone, may I win a lighter punishment. By +one deed, and the resignation of all my titles, all my lands, and all my +honors, may I merit to be spared to my work--which has only begun.” + +I knew now that we were lost, indeed; these were confidences which our +graves should hold inviolate! He suddenly opened fully those blazing +green eyes and directed their baneful glare upon Nayland Smith. + +“The Director of the Universe,” he continued, softly, “has relented +toward me. To-night, you die! To-night, the arch-enemy of our caste +shall be no more. This is my offering--the price of redemption...” + +My mind was working again, and actively. I managed to grasp the +stupendous truth--and the stupendous possibility. + +Dr. Fu-Manchu was in the act of clapping his hands, when I spoke. + +“Stop!” I cried. + +He paused, and the weird film, which sometimes became visible in his +eyes, now obscured their greenness, and lent him the appearance of a +blind man. + +“Dr. Petrie,” he said, softly, “I shall always listen to you with +respect.” + +“I have an offer to make,” I continued, seeking to steady my voice. +“Give us our freedom, and I will restore your shattered honor--I will +restore the sacred peacock!” + +Dr. Fu-Manchu bent forward until his face was so close to mine that I +could see the innumerable lines which, an intricate network, covered his +yellow skin. + +“Speak!” he hissed. “You lift up my heart from a dark pit!” + +“I can restore your white peacock,” I said; “I and I alone, know where +it is!”--and I strove not to shrink from the face so close to mine. + +Upright shot the tall figure; high above his head Fu-Manchu threw +his arms--and a light of exaltation gleamed in the now widely opened, +catlike eyes. + +“O god!” he screamed, frenziedly--“O god of the Golden Age! like a +phoenix I arise from the ashes of myself!” He turned to me. “Quick! +Quick! make your bargain! End my suspense!” + +Smith stared at me like a man dazed; but, ignoring him, I went on: + +“You will release me, now, immediately. In another ten minutes it will +be too late; my friend will remain. One of your--servants--can accompany +me, and give the signal when I return with the peacock. Mr. Nayland +Smith and yourself, or another, will join me at the corner of the street +where the raid took place last night. We shall then give you ten minutes +grace, after which we shall take whatever steps we choose.” + +“Agreed!” cried Fu-Manchu. “I ask but one thing from an Englishman; your +word of honor?” + +“I give it.” + +“I, also,” said Smith, hoarsely. + + * * * * * + +Ten minutes later, Nayland Smith and I, standing beside the cab, whose +lights gleamed yellowly through the mist, exchanged a struggling, +frightened bird for our lives--capitulated with the enemy of the white +race. + +With characteristic audacity--and characteristic trust in the British +sense of honor--Dr. Fu-Manchu came in person with Nayland Smith, in +response to the wailing signal of the dacoit who had accompanied me. No +word was spoken, save that the cabman suppressed a curse of amazement; +and the Chinaman, his sinister servant at his elbow, bowed low--and left +us, surely to the mocking laughter of the gods! + + + +CHAPTER XIV. THE COUGHING HORROR + +I leaped up in bed with a great start. + +My sleep was troubled often enough in these days, which immediately +followed our almost miraculous escape, from the den of Fu-Manchu; and +now as I crouched there, nerves aquiver--listening--listening--I could +not be sure if this dank panic which possessed me had its origin in +nightmare or in something else. + +Surely a scream, a choking cry for help, had reached my ears; but now, +almost holding my breath in that sort of nervous tensity peculiar to one +aroused thus, I listened, and the silence seemed complete. Perhaps I had +been dreaming... + +“Help! Petrie! Help!...” + +It was Nayland Smith in the room above me! + +My doubts were dissolved; this was no trick of an imagination +disordered. Some dreadful menace threatened my friend. Not delaying +even to snatch my dressing-gown, I rushed out on to the landing, up the +stairs, bare-footed as I was, threw open the door of Smith’s room and +literally hurled myself in. + +Those cries had been the cries of one assailed, had been uttered, I +judged, in the brief interval of a life and death struggle; had been +choked off... + +A certain amount of moonlight found access to the room, without +spreading so far as the bed in which my friend lay. But at the moment +of my headlong entrance, and before I had switched on the light, my gaze +automatically was directed to the pale moonbeam streaming through the +window and down on to one corner of the sheep-skin rug beside the bed. + +There came a sound of faint and muffled coughing. + +What with my recent awakening and the panic at my heart, I could not +claim that my vision was true; but across this moonbeam passed a sort of +gray streak, for all the world as though some long thin shape had been +withdrawn, snakelike, from the room, through the open window... From +somewhere outside the house, and below, I heard the cough again, +followed by a sharp cracking sound like the lashing of a whip. + +I depressed the switch, flooding the room with light, and as I leaped +forward to the bed a word picture of what I had seen formed in my mind; +and I found that I was thinking of a gray feather boa. + +“Smith!” I cried (my voice seemed to pitch itself, unwilled, in a very +high key), “Smith, old man!” + +He made no reply, and a sudden, sorrowful fear clutched at my +heart-strings. He was lying half out of bed flat upon his back, his head +at a dreadful angle with his body. As I bent over him and seized him by +the shoulders, I could see the whites of his eyes. His arms hung limply, +and his fingers touched the carpet. + +“My God!” I whispered--“what has happened?” + +I heaved him back onto the pillow, and looked anxiously into his face. +Habitually gaunt, the flesh so refined away by the consuming nervous +energy of the man as to reveal the cheekbones in sharp prominence, he +now looked truly ghastly. His skin was so sunbaked as to have changed +constitutionally; nothing could ever eradicate that tan. But to-night a +fearful grayness was mingled with the brown, his lips were purple... and +there were marks of strangulation upon the lean throat--ever darkening +weals made by clutching fingers. + +He began to breathe stentoriously and convulsively, inhalation being +accompanied by a significant gurgling in the throat. But now my calm was +restored in face of a situation which called for professional attention. + +I aided my friend’s labored respirations by the usual means, setting to +work vigorously; so that presently he began to clutch at his inflamed +throat which that murderous pressure had threatened to close. + +I could hear sounds of movement about the house, showing that not I +alone had been awakened by those hoarse screams. + +“It’s all right, old man,” I said, bending over him; “brace up!” + +He opened his eyes--they looked bleared and bloodshot--and gave me a +quick glance of recognition. + +“It’s all right, Smith!” I said--“no! don’t sit up; lie there for a +moment.” + +I ran across to the dressing-table, whereon I perceived his flask to +lie, and mixed him a weak stimulant with which I returned to the bed. + +As I bent over him again, my housekeeper appeared in the doorway, pale +and wide-eyed. + +“There is no occasion for alarm,” I said over my shoulder; “Mr. Smith’s +nerves are overwrought and he was awakened by some disturbing dream. You +can return to bed, Mrs. Newsome.” + +Nayland Smith seemed to experience much difficulty in swallowing the +contents of the tumbler which I held to his lips; and, from the way in +which he fingered the swollen glands, I could see that his throat, +which I had vigorously massaged, was occasioning him great pain. But the +danger was past, and already that glassy look was disappearing from his +eyes, nor did they protrude so unnaturally. + +“God, Petrie!” he whispered, “that was a near shave! I haven’t the +strength of a kitten!” + +“The weakness will pass off,” I replied; “there will be no collapse, +now. A little more fresh air...” + +I stood up, glancing at the windows, then back at Smith, who forced a +wry smile in answer to my look. + +“Couldn’t be done, Petrie,” he said, huskily. + +His words referred to the state of the windows. Although the night was +oppressively hot, these were only opened some four inches at top and +bottom. Further opening was impossible because of iron brackets screwed +firmly into the casements which prevented the windows being raised or +lowered further. + +It was a precaution adopted after long experience of the servants of Dr. +Fu-Manchu. + +Now, as I stood looking from the half-strangled man upon the bed to +those screwed-up windows, the fact came home to my mind that this +precaution had proved futile. I thought of the thing which I had likened +to a feather boa; and I looked at the swollen weals made by clutching +fingers upon the throat of Nayland Smith. + +The bed stood fully four feet from the nearest window. + +I suppose the question was written in my face; for, as I turned again +to Smith, who, having struggled upright, was still fingering his injured +throat ruefully: + +“God only knows, Petrie!” he said; “no human arm could have reached +me...” + +For us, the night was ended so far as sleep was concerned. Arrayed in +his dressing-gown, Smith sat in the white cane chair in my study with +a glass of brandy-and-water beside him, and (despite my official +prohibition) with the cracked briar which had sent up its incense in +many strange and dark places of the East and which yet survived to +perfume these prosy rooms in suburban London, steaming between his +teeth. I stood with my elbow resting upon the mantelpiece looking down +at him where he sat. + +“By God! Petrie,” he said, yet again, with his fingers straying gently +over the surface of his throat, “that was a narrow shave--a damned +narrow shave!” + +“Narrower than perhaps you appreciate, old man,” I replied. “You were a +most unusual shade of blue when I found you...” + +“I managed,” said Smith evenly, “to tear those clutching fingers away +for a moment and to give a cry for help. It was only for a moment, +though. Petrie! they were fingers of steel--of steel!” + +“The bed,” I began... + +“I know that,” rapped Smith. “I shouldn’t have been sleeping in it, had +it been within reach of the window; but, knowing that the doctor avoids +noisy methods, I had thought myself fairly safe so long as I made it +impossible for any one actually to enter the room...” + +“I have always insisted, Smith,” I cried, “that there was danger! What +of poisoned darts? What of the damnable reptiles and insects which form +part of the armory of Fu-Manchu?” + +“Familiarity breeds contempt, I suppose,” he replied. “But as it +happened none of those agents was employed. The very menace that I +sought to avoid reached me somehow. It would almost seem that Dr. +Fu-Manchu deliberately accepted the challenge of those screwed-up +windows! Hang it all, Petrie! one cannot sleep in a room hermetically +sealed, in weather like this! It’s positively Burmese; and although I +can stand tropical heat, curiously enough the heat of London gets me +down almost immediately.” + +“The humidity; that’s easily understood. But you’ll have to put up with +it in the future. After nightfall our windows must be closed entirely, +Smith.” + +Nayland Smith knocked out his pipe upon the side of the fireplace. The +bowl sizzled furiously, but without delay he stuffed broad-cut mixture +into the hot pipe, dropping a liberal quantity upon the carpet during +the process. He raised his eyes to me, and his face was very grim. + +“Petrie,” he said, striking a match on the heel of his slipper, “the +resources of Dr. Fu-Manchu are by no means exhausted. Before we quit +this room it is up to us to come to a decision upon a certain point.” He +got his pipe well alight. “What kind of thing, what unnatural, distorted +creature, laid hands upon my throat to-night? I owe my life, primarily, +to you, old man, but, secondarily, to the fact that I was awakened, just +before the attack--by the creature’s coughing--by its vile, high-pitched +coughing...” + +I glanced around at the books upon my shelves. Often enough, following +some outrage by the brilliant Chinese doctor whose genius was directed +to the discovery of new and unique death agents, we had obtained a clue +in those works of a scientific nature which bulk largely in the +library of a medical man. There are creatures, there are drugs, which, +ordinarily innocuous, may be so employed as to become inimical to human +life; and in the distorting of nature, in the disturbing of balances and +the diverting of beneficent forces into strange and dangerous channels, +Dr. Fu-Manchu excelled. I had known him to enlarge, by artificial +culture, a minute species of fungus so as to render it a powerful agent +capable of attacking man; his knowledge of venomous insects has probably +never been paralleled in the history of the world; whilst, in the sphere +of pure toxicology, he had, and has, no rival; the Borgias were children +by comparison. But, look where I would, think how I might, no adequate +explanation of this latest outrage seemed possible along normal lines. + +“There’s the clue,” said Nayland Smith, pointing to a little ash-tray +upon the table near by. “Follow it if you can.” + +But I could not. + +“As I have explained,” continued my friend, “I was awakened by a sound +of coughing; then came a death grip on my throat, and instinctively my +hands shot out in search of my attacker. I could not reach him; my +hands came in contact with nothing palpable. Therefore I clutched at the +fingers which were dug into my windpipe, and found them to be small--as +the marks show--and hairy. I managed to give that first cry for +help, then with all my strength I tried to unfasten the grip that was +throttling the life out of me. At last I contrived to move one of the +hands, and I called out again, though not so loudly. Then both the hands +were back again; I was weakening; but I clawed like a madman at the +thin, hairy arms of the strangling thing, and with a blood-red mist +dancing before my eyes, I seemed to be whirling madly round and round +until all became a blank. Evidently I used my nails pretty freely--and +there’s the trophy.” + +For the twentieth time, I should think, I carried the ash-tray in my +hand and laid it immediately under the table-lamp in order to examine +its contents. In the little brass bowl lay a blood-stained fragment of +grayish hair attached to a tatter of skin. This fragment of epidermis +had an odd bluish tinge, and the attached hair was much darker at the +roots than elsewhere. Saving its singular color, it might have been +torn from the forearm of a very hirsute human; but although my thoughts +wandered unfettered, north, south, east and west; although, knowing the +resources of Fu-Manchu, I considered all the recognized Mongolian +types, and, in quest of hirsute mankind, even roamed far north among +the blubbering Esquimo; although I glanced at Australasia, at Central +Africa, and passed in mental review the dark places of the Congo, +nowhere in the known world, nowhere in the history of the human species, +could I come upon a type of man answering to the description suggested +by our strange clue. + +Nayland Smith was watching me curiously as I bent over the little brass +ash-tray. + +“You are puzzled,” he rapped in his short way. + +“So am I--utterly puzzled. Fu-Manchu’s gallery of monstrosities clearly +has become reinforced; for even if we identified the type, we should not +be in sight of our explanation.” + +“You mean,” I began... + +“Fully four feet from the window, Petrie, and that window but a few +inches open! Look”--he bent forward, resting his chest against the +table, and stretched out his hand toward me. “You have a rule there; +just measure.” + +Setting down the ash-tray, I opened out the rule and measured the +distance from the further edge of the table to the tips of Smith’s +fingers. + +“Twenty-eight inches--and I have a long reach!” snapped Smith, +withdrawing his arm and striking a match to relight his pipe. “There’s +one thing, Petrie, often proposed before, which now we must do without +delay. The ivy must be stripped from the walls at the back. It’s a +pity, but we can not afford to sacrifice our lives to our sense of the +aesthetic. What do you make of the sound like the cracking of a whip?” + +“I make nothing of it, Smith,” I replied, wearily. “It might have been a +thick branch of ivy breaking beneath the weight of a climber.” + +“Did it sound like it?” + +“I must confess that the explanation does not convince me, but I have no +better one.” + +Smith, permitting his pipe to go out, sat staring straight before him, +and tugging at the lobe of his left ear. + +“The old bewilderment is seizing me,” I continued. “At first, when I +realized that Dr. Fu-Manchu was back in England, when I realized that +an elaborate murder-machine was set up somewhere in London, it seemed +unreal, fantastical. Then I met--Karamaneh! She, whom we thought to be +his victim, showed herself again to be his slave. Now, with Weymouth and +Scotland Yard at work, the old secret evil is established again in our +midst, unaccountably--our lives are menaced--sleep is a danger--every +shadow threatens death... oh! it is awful.” + +Smith remained silent; he did not seem to have heard my words. I knew +these moods and had learnt that it was useless to seek to interrupt +them. With his brows drawn down, and his deep-set eyes staring into +space, he sat there gripping his cold pipe so tightly that my own jaw +muscles ached sympathetically. No man was better equipped than this +gaunt British Commissioner to stand between society and the menace of +the Yellow Doctor; I respected his meditations, for, unlike my own, they +were informed by an intimate knowledge of the dark and secret things of +the East, of that mysterious East out of which Fu-Manchu came, of that +jungle of noxious things whose miasma had been wafted Westward with the +implacable Chinaman. + +I walked quietly from the room, occupied with my own bitter reflections. + + + +CHAPTER XV. BEWITCHMENT + +“You say you have two items of news for me?” said Nayland Smith, looking +across the breakfast table to where Inspector Weymouth sat sipping +coffee. + +“There are two points--yes,” replied the Scotland Yard man, whilst Smith +paused, egg-spoon in hand, and fixed his keen eyes upon the speaker. +“The first is this: the headquarters of the Yellow group is no longer in +the East End.” + +“How can you be sure of that?” + +“For two reasons. In the first place, that district must now be too hot +to hold Dr. Fu-Manchu; in the second place, we have just completed a +house-to-house inquiry which has scarcely overlooked a rathole or a rat. +That place where you say Fu-Manchu was visited by some Chinese mandarin; +where you, Mr. Smith,” and--glancing in my direction--“you, Doctor, were +confined for a time--” + +“Yes?” snapped Smith, attacking his egg. + +“Well,” continued the inspector, “it is all deserted, now. There is not +the slightest doubt that the Chinaman has fled to some other abode. I am +certain of it. My second piece of news will interest you very much, I am +sure. You were taken to the establishment of the Chinaman, Shen-Yan, by +a certain ex-officer of New York Police--Burke...” + +“Good God!” cried Smith, looking up with a start; “I thought they had +him!” + +“So did I,” replied Weymouth grimly; “but they haven’t! He got away in +the confusion following the raid, and has been hiding ever since with a +cousin, a nurseryman out Upminster way...” + +“Hiding?” snapped Smith. + +“Exactly--hiding. He has been afraid to stir ever since, and has +scarcely shown his nose outside the door. He says he is watched night +and day.” + +“Then how...” + +“He realized that something must be done,” continued the inspector, +“and made a break this morning. He is so convinced of this constant +surveillance that he came away secretly, hidden under the boxes of a +market-wagon. He landed at Covent Garden in the early hours of this +morning and came straight away to the Yard.” + +“What is he afraid of exactly?” + +Inspector Weymouth put down his coffee cup and bent forward slightly. + +“He knows something,” he said in a low voice, “and they are aware that +he knows it!” + +“And what is this he knows?” + +Nayland Smith stared eagerly at the detective. + +“Every man has his price,” replied Weymouth with a smile, “and Burke +seems to think that you are a more likely market than the police +authorities.” + +“I see,” snapped Smith. “He wants to see me?” + +“He wants you to go and see him,” was the reply. “I think he anticipates +that you may make a capture of the person or persons spying upon him.” + +“Did he give you any particulars?” + +“Several. He spoke of a sort of gipsy girl with whom he had a short +conversation one day, over the fence which divides his cousin’s flower +plantations from the lane adjoining.” + +“Gipsy girl!” I whispered, glancing rapidly at Smith. + +“I think you are right, Doctor,” said Weymouth with his slow smile; “it +was Karamaneh. She asked him the way to somewhere or other and got him +to write it upon a loose page of his notebook, so that she should not +forget it.” + +“You hear that, Petrie?” rapped Smith. + +“I hear it,” I replied, “but I don’t see any special significance in the +fact.” + +“I do!” rapped Smith; “I didn’t sit up the greater part of last night +thrashing my weary brains for nothing! But I am going to the British +Museum to-day, to confirm a certain suspicion.” He turned to Weymouth. +“Did Burke go back?” he demanded abruptly. + +“He returned hidden under the empty boxes,” was the reply. “Oh! you +never saw a man in such a funk in all your life!” + +“He may have good reasons,” I said. + +“He has good reasons!” replied Nayland Smith grimly; “if that man really +possesses information inimical to the safety of Fu-Manchu, he can only +escape doom by means of a miracle similar to that which has hitherto +protected you and me.” + +“Burke insists,” said Weymouth at this point, “that something comes +almost every night after dusk, slinking about the house--it’s an old +farmhouse, I understand; and on two or three occasions he has been +awakened (fortunately for him he is a light sleeper) by sounds of +coughing immediately outside his window. He is a man who sleeps with a +pistol under his pillow, and more than once, on running to the window, +he has had a vague glimpse of some creature leaping down from the tiles +of the roof, which slopes up to his room, into the flower beds below...” + +“Creature!” said Smith, his gray eyes ablaze now--“you said creature!” + +“I used the word deliberately,” replied Weymouth, “because Burke seems +to have the idea that it goes on all fours.” + +There was a short and rather strained silence. Then: + +“In descending a sloping roof,” I suggested, “a human being would +probably employ his hands as well as his feet.” + +“Quite so,” agreed the inspector. “I am merely reporting the impression +of Burke.” + +“Has he heard no other sound?” rapped Smith; “one like the cracking of +dry branches, for instance?” + +“He made no mention of it,” replied Weymouth, staring. + +“And what is the plan?” + +“One of his cousin’s vans,” said Weymouth, with his slight smile, “has +remained behind at Covent Garden and will return late this afternoon. +I propose that you and I, Mr. Smith, imitate Burke and ride down to +Upminster under the empty boxes!” + +Nayland Smith stood up, leaving his breakfast half finished, and began +to wander up and down the room, reflectively tugging at his ear. Then he +began to fumble in the pockets of his dressing-gown and finally produced +the inevitable pipe, dilapidated pouch, and box of safety matches. He +began to load the much-charred agent of reflection. + +“Do I understand that Burke is actually too afraid to go out openly even +in daylight?” he asked suddenly. + +“He has not hitherto left his cousin’s plantations at all,” replied +Weymouth. “He seems to think that openly to communicate with the +authorities, or with you, would be to seal his death warrant.” + +“He’s right,” snapped Smith. + +“Therefore he came and returned secretly,” continued the inspector; “and +if we are to do any good, obviously we must adopt similar precautions. +The market wagon, loaded in such a way as to leave ample space in the +interior for us, will be drawn up outside the office of Messrs. Pike +and Pike, in Covent Garden, until about five o’clock this afternoon. At, +say, half past four, I propose that we meet there and embark upon the +journey.” + +The speaker glanced in my direction interrogatively. + +“Include me in the program,” I said. “Will there be room in the wagon?” + +“Certainly,” was the reply; “it is most commodious, but I cannot +guarantee its comfort.” + +Nayland Smith promenaded the room, unceasingly, and presently he walked +out altogether, only to return ere the inspector and I had had time to +exchange more than a glance of surprise, carrying a brass ash-tray. He +placed this on a corner of the breakfast table before Weymouth. + +“Ever seen anything like that?” he inquired. + +The inspector examined the gruesome relic with obvious curiosity, +turning it over with the tip of his little finger and manifesting +considerable repugnance--in touching it at all. Smith and I watched +him in silence, and, finally, placing the tray again upon the table, he +looked up in a puzzled way. + +“It’s something like the skin of a water rat,” he said. + +Nayland Smith stared at him fixedly. + +“A water rat? Now that you come to mention it, I perceive a certain +resemblance--yes. But”--he had been wearing a silk scarf about his +throat and now he unwrapped it--“did you ever see a water rat that could +make marks like these?” + +Weymouth started to his feet with some muttered exclamation. + +“What is this?” he cried. “When did it happen, and how?” + +In his own terse fashion, Nayland Smith related the happenings of the +night. At the conclusion of the story: + +“By heaven!” whispered Weymouth, “the thing on the roof--the coughing +thing that goes on all fours, seen by Burke...” + +“My own idea exactly!” cried Smith... + +“Fu-Manchu,” I said excitedly, “has brought some new, some dreadful +creature, from Burma...” + +“No, Petrie,” snapped Smith, turning upon me suddenly. “Not from +Burma--from Abyssinia.” + +That day was destined to be an eventful one; a day never to be forgotten +by any of us concerned in those happenings which I have to record. Early +in the morning Nayland Smith set off for the British Museum to +pursue his mysterious investigations, and having performed my brief +professional round (for, as Nayland Smith had remarked on one occasion, +this was a beastly healthy district), I found, having made the necessary +arrangements, that, with over three hours to spare, I had nothing to +occupy my time until the appointment in Covent Garden Market. My lonely +lunch completed, a restless fit seized me, and I felt unable to remain +longer in the house. Inspired by this restlessness, I attired myself +for the adventure of the evening, not neglecting to place a pistol in +my pocket, and, walking to the neighboring Tube station, I booked to +Charing Cross, and presently found myself rambling aimlessly along the +crowded streets. Led on by what link of memory I know not, I presently +drifted into New Oxford Street, and looked up with a start--to learn +that I stood before the shop of a second-hand book-seller where once two +years before I had met Karamaneh. + +The thoughts conjured up at that moment were almost too bitter to be +borne, and without so much as glancing at the books displayed for sale, +I crossed the roadway, entered Museum Street, and, rather in order to +distract my mind than because I contemplated any purchase, began to +examine the Oriental Pottery, Egyptian statuettes, Indian armor, and +other curios, displayed in the window of an antique dealer. + +But, strive as I would to concentrate my mind upon the objects in the +window, my memories persistently haunted me, and haunted me to the +exclusion even of the actualities. The crowds thronging the Pavement, +the traffic in New Oxford Street, swept past unheeded; my eyes saw +nothing of pot nor statuette, but only met, in a misty imaginative +world, the glance of two other eyes--the dark and beautiful eyes of +Karamaneh. In the exquisite tinting of a Chinese vase dimly perceptible +in the background of the shop, I perceived only the blushing cheeks +of Karamaneh; her face rose up, a taunting phantom, from out of the +darkness between a hideous, gilded idol and an Indian sandalwood screen. + +I strove to dispel this obsessing thought, resolutely fixing my +attention upon a tall Etruscan vase in the corner of the window, near to +the shop door. Was I losing my senses indeed? A doubt of my own sanity +momentarily possessed me. For, struggle as I would to dispel the +illusion--there, looking out at me over that ancient piece of pottery, +was the bewitching face of the slave-girl! + +Probably I was glaring madly, and possibly I attracted the notice of the +passers-by; but of this I cannot be certain, for all my attention was +centered upon that phantasmal face, with the cloudy hair, slightly +parted red lips, and the brilliant dark eyes which looked into mine out +of the shadows of the shop. + +It was bewildering--it was uncanny; for, delusion or verity, the glamour +prevailed. I exerted a great mental effort, stepped to the door, turned +the handle, and entered the shop with as great a show of composure as I +could muster. + +A curtain draped in a little door at the back of one counter swayed +slightly, with no greater violence than may have been occasioned by +the draught. But I fixed my eyes upon this swaying curtain almost +fiercely... as an impassive half-caste of some kind who appeared to be a +strange cross between a Graeco-Hebrew and a Japanese, entered and quite +unemotionally faced me, with a slight bow. + +So wholly unexpected was this apparition that I started back. + +“Can I show you anything, sir?” inquired the new arrival, with a second +slight inclination of the head. + +I looked at him for a moment in silence. Then: + +“I thought I saw a lady of my acquaintance here a moment ago,” I said. +“Was I mistaken?” + +“Quite mistaken, sir,” replied the shopman, raising his black eyebrows +ever so slightly; “a mistake possibly due to a reflection in the window. +Will you take a look around now that you are here?” + +“Thank you,” I replied, staring him hard in the face; “at some other +time.” + +I turned and quitted the shop abruptly. Either I was mad, or Karamaneh +was concealed somewhere therein. + +However, realizing my helplessness in the matter, I contented myself +with making a mental note of the name which appeared above the +establishment--J. Salaman--and walked on, my mind in a chaotic condition +and my heart beating with unusual rapidity. + + + +CHAPTER XVI. THE QUESTING HANDS + +Within my view, from the corner of the room where I sat in deepest +shadow, through the partly opened window (it was screwed, like our own) +were rows of glass-houses gleaming in the moonlight, and, beyond them, +orderly ranks of flower-beds extending into a blue haze of distance. By +reason of the moon’s position, no light entered the room, but my eyes, +from long watching, were grown familiar with the darkness, and I could +see Burke quite clearly as he lay in the bed between my post and the +window. I seemed to be back again in those days of the troubled past +when first Nayland Smith and I had come to grips with the servants of +Dr. Fu-Manchu. A more peaceful scene than this flower-planted corner +of Essex it would be difficult to imagine; but, either because of my +knowledge that its peace was chimerical, or because of that outflung +consciousness of danger which, actually, or in my imagination, preceded +the coming of the Chinaman’s agents, to my seeming the silence throbbed +electrically and the night was laden with stilly omens. + +Already cramped by my journey in the market-cart, I found it difficult +to remain very long in any one position. What information had Burke +to sell? He had refused, for some reason, to discuss the matter that +evening, and now, enacting the part allotted him by Nayland Smith, he +feigned sleep consistently, although at intervals he would whisper to me +his doubts and fears. + +All the chances were in our favor to-night; for whilst I could not doubt +that Dr. Fu-Manchu was set upon the removal of the ex-officer of New +York police, neither could I doubt that our presence in the farm was +unknown to the agents of the Chinaman. According to Burke, constant +attempts had been made to achieve Fu-Manchu’s purpose, and had only been +frustrated by his (Burke’s) wakefulness. + +There was every probability that another attempt would be made to-night. + +Any one who has been forced by circumstance to undertake such a vigil as +this will be familiar with the marked changes (corresponding with +phases of the earth’s movement) which take place in the atmosphere, at +midnight, at two o’clock, and again at four o’clock. During those fours +hours falls a period wherein all life is at its lowest ebb, and every +Physician is aware that there is a greater likelihood of a patient’s +passing between midnight and four A. M., than at any other period during +the cycle of the hours. + +To-night I became specially aware of this lowering of vitality, and +now, with the night at that darkest phase which precedes the dawn, an +indescribable dread, such as I had known before in my dealings with +the Chinaman, assailed me, when I was least prepared to combat it. The +stillness was intense. Then: + +“Here it is!” whispered Burke from the bed. + +The chill at the very center of my being, which but corresponded with +the chill of all surrounding nature at that hour, became intensified, +keener, at the whispered words. + +I rose stealthily out of my chair, and from my nest of shadows +watched--watched intently, the bright oblong of the window... + +Without the slightest heralding sound--a black silhouette crept up +against the pane... the silhouette of a small, malformed head, a +dog-like head, deep-set in square shoulders. Malignant eyes peered +intently in. Higher it arose--that wicked head--against the window, +then crouched down on the sill and became less sharply defined as +the creature stooped to the opening below. There was a faint sound of +sniffing. + +Judging from the stark horror which I experienced, myself, I doubted, +now, if Burke could sustain the role allotted him. In beneath the +slightly raised window came a hand, perceptible to me despite the +darkness of the room. It seemed to project from the black silhouette +outside the pane, to be thrust forward--and forward--and forward... that +small hand with the outstretched fingers. + +The unknown possesses unique terrors; and since I was unable to conceive +what manner of thing this could be, which, extending its incredibly long +arms, now sought the throat of the man upon the bed, I tasted of that +sort of terror which ordinarily one knows only in dreams. + +“Quick, sir--quick!” screamed Burke, starting up from the pillow. + +The questing hands had reached his throat! + +Choking down an urgent dread that I had of touching the thing which +reached through the window to kill the sleeper, I sprang across the room +and grasped the rigid, hairy forearms. + +Heavens! Never have I felt such muscles, such tendons, as those beneath +the hirsute skin! They seemed to be of steel wire, and with a sudden +frightful sense of impotence, I realized that I was as powerless as a +child to relax that strangle-hold. Burke was making the most frightful +sounds and quite obviously was being asphyxiated before my eyes! + +“Smith!” I cried, “Smith! Help! help! for God’s sake!” + +Despite the confusion of my mind I became aware of sounds outside and +below me. Twice the thing at the window coughed; there was an incessant, +lash-like cracking, then some shouted words which I was unable to make +out; and finally the staccato report of a pistol. + +Snarling like that of a wild beast came from the creature with the hairy +arms, together with renewed coughing. But the steel grip relaxed not one +iota. + +I realized two things: the first, that in my terror at the suddenness of +the attack I had omitted to act as pre-arranged: the second, that I had +discredited the strength of the visitant, whilst Smith had foreseen it. + +Desisting in my vain endeavor to pit my strength against that of the +nameless thing, I sprang back across the room and took up the weapon +which had been left in my charge earlier in the night, but which I had +been unable to believe it would be necessary to employ. This was a sharp +and heavy axe, which Nayland Smith, when I had met him in Covent Garden, +had brought with him, to the great amazement of Weymouth and myself. + +As I leaped back to the window and uplifted this primitive weapon, a +second shot sounded from below, and more fierce snarling, coughing, and +guttural mutterings assailed my ears from beyond the pane. + +Lifting the heavy blade, I brought it down with all my strength upon the +nearer of those hairy arms where it crossed the window-ledge, severing +muscle, tendon and bone as easily as a knife might cut cheese.... + +A shriek--a shriek neither human nor animal, but gruesomely compounded +of both--followed... and merged into a choking cough. Like a flash the +other shaggy arm was withdrawn, and some vaguely-seen body went rolling +down the sloping red tiles and crashed on to the ground beneath. + +With a second piercing shriek, louder than that recently uttered +by Burke, wailing through the night from somewhere below, I turned +desperately to the man on the bed, who now was become significantly +silent. A candle, with matches, stood upon a table hard by, and, +my fingers far from steady, I set about obtaining a light. This +accomplished, I stood the candle upon the little chest-of-drawers and +returned to Burke’s side. + +“Merciful God!” I cried. + +Of all the pictures which remain in my memory, some of them dark enough, +I can find none more horrible than that which now confronted me in the +dim candle-light. Burke lay crosswise on the bed, his head thrown back +and sagging; one rigid hand he held in the air, and with the other +grasped the hairy forearm which I had severed with the ax; for, in a +death-grip, the dead fingers were still fastened, vise-like, at his +throat. + +His face was nearly black, and his eyes projected from their sockets +horribly. Mastering my repugnance, I seized the hideous piece of +bleeding anatomy and strove to release it. It defied all my efforts; in +death it was as implacable as in life. I took a knife from my pocket, +and, tendon by tendon, cut away that uncanny grip from Burke’s throat... + +But my labor was in vain. Burke was dead! + +I think I failed to realize this for some time. My clothes were +sticking clammily to my body; I was bathed in perspiration, and, shaking +furiously, I clutched at the edge of the window, avoiding the bloody +patch upon the ledge, and looked out over the roofs to where, in the +more distant plantations, I could hear excited voices. What had been +the meaning of that scream which I had heard but to which in my frantic +state of mind I had paid comparatively little attention? + +There was a great stirring all about me. + +“Smith!” I cried from the window; “Smith, for mercy’s sake where are +you?” + +Footsteps came racing up the stairs. Behind me the door burst open and +Nayland Smith stumbled into the room. + +“God!” he said, and started back in the doorway. + +“Have you got it, Smith?” I demanded hoarsely. “In sanity’s name what is +it--what is it?” + +“Come downstairs,” replied Smith quietly, “and see for yourself.” He +turned his head aside from the bed. + +Very unsteadily I followed him down the stairs and through the rambling +old house out into the stone-paved courtyard. There were figures +moving at the end of a long alleyway between the glass houses, and one, +carrying a lantern, stooped over something which lay upon the ground. + +“That’s Burke’s cousin with the lantern,” whispered Smith in my ear; +“don’t tell him yet.” + +I nodded, and we hurried up to join the group. I found myself looking +down at one of those thick-set Burmans whom I always associated with +Fu-Manchu’s activities. He lay quite flat, face downward; but the back +of his head was a shapeless blood-dotted mass, and a heavy stock-whip, +the butt end ghastly because of the blood and hair which clung to it, +lay beside him. I started back appalled as Smith caught my arm. + +“It turned on its keeper!” he hissed in my ear. “I wounded it twice from +below, and you severed one arm; in its insensate fury, its unreasoning +malignity, it returned--and there lies its second victim...” + +“Then...” + +“It’s gone, Petrie! It has the strength of four men even now. Look!” + +He stooped, and from the clenched left hand of the dead Burman, +extracted a piece of paper and opened it. + +“Hold the lantern a moment,” he said. + +In the yellow light he glanced at the scrap of paper. + +“As I expected--a leaf of Burke’s notebook; it worked by scent.” He +turned to me with an odd expression in his gray eyes. “I wonder what +piece of my personal property Fu-Manchu has pilfered,” he said, “in +order to enable it to sleuth me?” + +He met the gaze of the man holding the lantern. + +“Perhaps you had better return to the house,” he said, looking him +squarely in the eyes. + +The other’s face blanched. + +“You don’t mean, sir--you don’t mean...” + +“Brace up!” said Smith, laying his hand upon his shoulder. “Remember--he +chose to play with fire!” + +One wild look the man cast from Smith to me, then went off, staggering, +toward the farm. + +“Smith,” I began... + +He turned to me with an impatient gesture. + +“Weymouth has driven into Upminster,” he snapped; “and the whole +district will be scoured before morning. They probably motored here, but +the sounds of the shots will have enabled whoever was with the car to +make good his escape. And exhausted from loss of blood, its capture is +only a matter of time, Petrie.” + + + +CHAPTER XVII. ONE DAY IN RANGOON + +Nayland Smith returned from the telephone. Nearly twenty-four hours had +elapsed since the awful death of Burke. + +“No news, Petrie,” he said, shortly. “It must have crept into some +inaccessible hole to die.” + +I glanced up from my notes. Smith settled into the white cane armchair, +and began to surround himself with clouds of aromatic smoke. I took up +a half-sheet of foolscap covered with penciled writing in my friend’s +cramped characters, and transcribed the following, in order to complete +my account of the latest Fu-Manchu outrage: + +“The Amharun, a Semitic tribe allied to the Falashas, who have +been settled for many generations in the southern province of Shoa +(Abyssinia) have been regarded as unclean and outcast, apparently since +the days of Menelek--son of Suleyman and the Queen of Sheba--from whom +they claim descent. Apart from their custom of eating meat cut from +living beasts, they are accursed because of their alleged association +with the Cynocephalus hamadryas (Sacred Baboon). I, myself, was taken +to a hut on the banks of the Hawash and shown a creature... whose +predominant trait was an unreasoning malignity toward... and a ferocious +tenderness for the society of its furry brethren. Its powers of scent +were fully equal to those of a bloodhound, whilst its abnormally long +forearms possessed incredible strength... a Cynocephalyte such as this, +contracts phthisis even in the more northern provinces of Abyssinia...” + +“You have not explained to me, Smith,” I said, having completed this +note, “how you got in touch with Fu-Manchu; how you learnt that he was +not dead, as we had supposed, but living--active.” + +Nayland Smith stood up and fixed his steely eyes upon me with an +indefinable expression in them. Then: + +“No,” he replied; “I haven’t. Do you wish to know?” + +“Certainly,” I said with surprise; “is there any reason why I should +not?” + +“There is no real reason,” said Smith; “or”--staring at me very hard--“I +hope there is no real reason.” + +“What do you mean?” + +“Well”--he grabbed up his pipe from the table and began furiously to +load it--“I blundered upon the truth one day in Rangoon. I was walking +out of a house which I occupied there for a time, and as I swung around +the corner into the main street, I ran into--literally ran into...” + +Again he hesitated oddly; then closed up his pouch and tossed it into +the cane chair. He struck a match. + +“I ran into Karamaneh,” he continued abruptly, and began to puff away at +his pipe, filling the air with clouds of tobacco smoke. + +I caught my breath. This was the reason why he had kept me so long in +ignorance of the story. He knew of my hopeless, uncrushable sentiments +toward the gloriously beautiful but utterly hypocritical and evil +Eastern girl who was perhaps the most dangerous of all Dr. Fu-Manchu’s +servants; for the power of her loveliness was magical, as I knew to my +cost. + +“What did you do?” I asked quietly, my fingers drumming upon the table. + +“Naturally enough,” continued Smith, “with a cry of recognition I +held out both my hands to her, gladly. I welcomed her as a dear friend +regained; I thought of the joy with which you would learn that I had +found the missing one; I thought how you would be in Rangoon just as +quickly as the fastest steamer could get you there...” + +“Well?” + +“Karamaneh started back and treated me to a glance of absolute +animosity. No recognition was there, and no friendliness--only a sort of +scornful anger.” + +He shrugged his shoulders and began to walk up and down the room. + +“I do not know what you would have done in the circumstances, Petrie, +but I--” + +“Yes?” + +“I dealt with the situation rather promptly, I think. I simply picked +her up without another word, right there in the public street, and raced +back into the house, with her kicking and fighting like a little demon! +She did not shriek or do anything of that kind, but fought silently like +a vicious wild animal. Oh! I had some scars, I assure you; but I carried +her up into my office, which fortunately was empty at the time, plumped +her down in a chair, and stood looking at her.” + +“Go on,” I said rather hollowly; “what next?” + +“She glared at me with those wonderful eyes, an expression of implacable +hatred in them! Remembering all that we had done for her; remembering +our former friendship; above all, remembering you--this look of hers +almost made me shiver. She was dressed very smartly in European fashion, +and the whole thing had been so sudden that as I stood looking at her I +half expected to wake up presently and find it all a day-dream. But it +was real--as real as her enmity. I felt the need for reflection, and +having vainly endeavored to draw her into conversation, and elicited no +other answer than this glare of hatred--I left her there, going out and +locking the door behind me.” + +“Very high-handed?” + +“A commissioner has certain privileges, Petrie, and any action I might +choose to take was not likely to be questioned. There was only one +window to the office, and it was fully twenty feet above the level; it +overlooked a narrow street off the main thoroughfare (I think I have +explained that the house stood on a corner) so I did not fear her +escaping. I had an important engagement which I had been on my way to +fulfil when the encounter took place, and now, with a word to my native +servant--who chanced to be downstairs--I hurried off.” + +Smith’s pipe had gone out as usual, and he proceeded to relight it, +whilst, with my eyes lowered, I continued to drum upon the table. + +“This boy took her some tea later in the afternoon,” he continued, +“and apparently found her in a more placid frame of mind. I returned +immediately after dusk, and he reported that when last he had looked in, +about half an hour earlier, she had been seated in an armchair reading +a newspaper (I may mention that everything of value in the office was +securely locked up!) I was determined upon a certain course by this +time, and I went slowly upstairs, unlocked the door, and walked into the +darkened office. I turned up the light... the place was empty!” + +“Empty!” + +“The window was open, and the bird flown! Oh! it was not so simple a +flight--as you would realize if you knew the place. The street, which +the window overlooked, was bounded by a blank wall, on the opposite +side, for thirty or forty yards along; and as we had been having heavy +rains, it was full of glutinous mud. Furthermore, the boy whom I had +left in charge had been sitting in the doorway immediately below the +office window watching for my return ever since his last visit to the +room above...” + +“She must have bribed him,” I said bitterly--“or corrupted him with her +infernal blandishments.” + +“I’ll swear she did not,” rapped Smith decisively. “I know my man, and +I’ll swear she did not. There were no marks in the mud of the road to +show that a ladder had been placed there; moreover, nothing of the kind +could have been attempted whilst the boy was sitting in the doorway; +that was evident. In short, she did not descend into the roadway and did +not come out by the door...” + +“Was there a gallery outside the window?” + +“No; it was impossible to climb to right or left of the window or up on +to the roof. I convinced myself of that.” + +“But, my dear man!” I cried, “you are eliminating every natural mode of +egress! Nothing remains but flight.” + +“I am aware, Petrie, that nothing remains but flight; in other words I +have never to this day understood how she quitted the room. I only know +that she did.” + +“And then?” + +“I saw in this incredible escape the cunning hand of Dr. Fu-Manchu--saw +it at once. Peace was ended; and I set to work along certain channels +without delay. In this manner I got on the track at last, and learned, +beyond the possibility of doubt, that the Chinese doctor lived--nay! was +actually on his way to Europe again!” + +There followed a short silence. Then: + +“I suppose it’s a mystery that will be cleared up some day,” concluded +Smith; “but to date the riddle remains intact.” He glanced at the clock. +“I have an appointment with Weymouth; therefore, leaving you to the task +of solving this problem which thus far has defied my own efforts, I will +get along.” + +He read a query in my glance. + +“Oh! I shall not be late,” he added; “I think I may venture out alone on +this occasion without personal danger.” + +Nayland Smith went upstairs to dress, leaving me seated at my writing +table, deep in thought. My notes upon the renewed activity of Dr. +Fu-Manchu were stacked at my left hand, and, opening a new writing +block, I commenced to add to them particulars of this surprising event +in Rangoon which properly marked the opening of the Chinaman’s second +campaign. Smith looked in at the door on his way out, but seeing me thus +engaged, did not disturb me. + +I think I have made it sufficiently evident in these records that my +practice was not an extensive one, and my hour for receiving patients +arrived and passed with only two professional interruptions. + +My task concluded, I glanced at the clock, and determined to devote the +remainder of the evening to a little private investigation of my own. +From Nayland Smith I had preserved the matter a secret, largely because +I feared his ridicule; but I had by no means forgotten that I had seen, +or had strongly imagined that I had seen, Karamaneh--that beautiful +anomaly, who (in modern London) asserted herself to be a slave--in the +shop of an antique dealer not a hundred yards from the British Museum! + +A theory was forming in my brain, which I was burningly anxious to put +to the test. I remembered how, two years before, I had met Karamaneh +near to this same spot; and I had heard Inspector Weymouth assert +positively that Fu-Manchu’s headquarters were no longer in the East +End, as of yore. There seemed to me to be a distinct probability that a +suitable center had been established for his reception in this place, so +much less likely to be suspected by the authorities. Perhaps I attached +too great a value to what may have been a delusion; perhaps my theory +rested upon no more solid foundation than the belief that I had seen +Karamaneh in the shop of the curio dealer. If her appearance there +should prove to have been phantasmal, the structure of my theory would +be shattered at its base. To-night I should test my premises, and upon +the result of my investigations determine my future action. + + + +CHAPTER XVIII. THE SILVER BUDDHA + +Museum Street certainly did not seem a likely spot for Dr. Fu-Manchu to +establish himself, yet, unless my imagination had strangely deceived me, +from the window of the antique dealer who traded under the name of J. +Salaman, those wonderful eyes of Karamaneh like the velvet midnight of +the Orient, had looked out at me. + +As I paced slowly along the pavement toward that lighted window, my +heart was beating far from normally, and I cursed the folly which, +in spite of all, refused to die, but lingered on, poisoning my +life. Comparative quiet reigned in Museum Street, at no time a busy +thoroughfare, and, excepting another shop at the Museum end, commercial +activities had ceased there. The door of a block of residential chambers +almost immediately opposite to the shop which was my objective, threw +out a beam of light across the pavement, but not more than two or three +people were visible upon either side of the street. + +I turned the knob of the door and entered the shop. + +The same dark and immobile individual whom I had seen before, and whose +nationality defied conjecture, came out from the curtained doorway at +the back to greet me. + +“Good evening, sir,” he said monotonously, with a slight inclination of +the head; “is there anything which you desire to inspect?” + +“I merely wish to take a look around,” I replied. “I have no particular +item in view.” + +The shop man inclined his head again, swept a yellow hand +comprehensively about, as if to include the entire stock, and seated +himself on a chair behind the counter. + +I lighted a cigarette with such an air of nonchalance as I could summon +to the operation, and began casually to inspect the varied objects of +interest loading the shelves and tables about me. I am bound to confess +that I retain no one definite impression of this tour. Vases I handled, +statuettes, Egyptian scarabs, bead necklaces, illuminated missals, +portfolios of old prints, jade ornaments, bronzes, fragments of rare +lace, early printed books, Assyrian tablets, daggers, Roman rings, and +a hundred other curiosities, leisurely, and I trust with apparent +interest, yet without forming the slightest impression respecting any +one of them. + +Probably I employed myself in this way for half an hour or more, and +whilst my hands busied themselves among the stock of J. Salaman, my mind +was occupied entirely elsewhere. Furtively I was studying the shopman +himself, a human presentment of a Chinese idol; I was listening and +watching; especially I was watching the curtained doorway at the back of +the shop. + +“We close at about this time, sir,” the man interrupted me, speaking in +the emotionless, monotonous voice which I had noted before. + +I replaced upon the glass counter a little Sekhet boat, carved in wood +and highly colored, and glanced up with a start. Truly my methods were +amateurish; I had learnt nothing; I was unlikely to learn anything. I +wondered how Nayland Smith would have conducted such an inquiry, and I +racked my brains for some means of penetrating into the recesses of the +establishment. Indeed, I had been seeking such a plan for the past half +an hour, but my mind had proved incapable of suggesting one. + +Why I did not admit failure I cannot imagine, but, instead, I began to +tax my brains anew for some means of gaining further time; and, as +I looked about the place, the shopman very patiently awaiting my +departure, I observed an open case at the back of the counter. The three +lower shelves were empty, but upon the fourth shelf squatted a silver +Buddha. + +“I should like to examine the silver image yonder,” I said; “what price +are you asking for it?” + +“It is not for sale, sir,” replied the man, with a greater show of +animation than he had yet exhibited. + +“Not for sale!” I said, my eyes ever seeking the curtained doorway; +“how’s that?” + +“It is sold.” + +“Well, even so, there can be no objection to my examining it?” + +“It is not for sale, sir.” + +Such a rebuff from a tradesman would have been more than sufficient +to call for a sharp retort at any other time, but now it excited the +strangest suspicions. The street outside looked comparatively deserted, +and prompted, primarily, by an emotion which I did not pause to analyze, +I adopted a singular measure; without doubt I relied upon the unusual +powers vested in Nayland Smith to absolve me in the event of error. +I made as if to go out into the street, then turned, leaped past the +shopman, ran behind the counter, and grasped at the silver Buddha! + +That I was likely to be arrested for attempted larceny I cared not; +the idea that Karamaneh was concealed somewhere in the building +ruled absolutely, and a theory respecting this silver image had taken +possession of my mind. Exactly what I expected to happen at that moment +I cannot say, but what actually happened was far more startling than +anything I could have imagined. + +At the instant that I grasped the figure I realized that it was attached +to the woodwork; in the next I knew that it was a handle ... as I tried +to pull it toward me I became aware that this handle was the handle of a +door. For that door swung open before me, and I found myself at the foot +of a flight of heavily carpeted stairs. + +Anxious as I had been to proceed a moment before, I was now trebly +anxious to retire, and for this reason: on the bottom step of the stair, +facing me, stood Dr. Fu-Manchu! + + + +CHAPTER XIX. DR. FU-MANCHU’S LABORATORY + +I cannot conceive that any ordinary mortal ever attained to anything +like an intimacy with Dr. Fu-Manchu; I cannot believe that any man could +ever grow used to his presence, could ever cease to fear him. I suppose +I had set eyes upon Fu-Manchu some five or six times prior to this +occasion, and now he was dressed in the manner which I always associated +with him, probably because it was thus I first saw him. He wore a plain +yellow robe, and, with his pointed chin resting upon his bosom, he +looked down at me, revealing a great expanse of the marvelous brow with +its sparse, neutral-colored hair. + +Never in my experience have I known such force to dwell in the glance +of any human eye as dwelt in that of this uncanny being. His singular +affliction (if affliction it were), the film or slight membrane which +sometimes obscured the oblique eyes, was particularly evident at the +moment that I crossed the threshold, but now, as I looked up at Dr. +Fu-Manchu, it lifted--revealing the eyes in all their emerald greenness. + +The idea of physical attack upon this incredible being seemed +childish--inadequate. But, following that first instant of stupefaction, +I forced myself to advance upon him. + +A dull, crushing blow descended on the top of my skull, and I became +oblivious of all things. + +My return to consciousness was accompanied by tremendous pains in my +head, whereby, from previous experience, I knew that a sandbag had been +used against me by some one in the shop, presumably by the immobile +shopman. This awakening was accompanied by none of those hazy doubts +respecting previous events and present surroundings which are the usual +symptoms of revival from sudden unconsciousness; even before I opened +my eyes, before I had more than a partial command of my senses, I knew +that, with my wrists handcuffed behind me, I lay in a room which +was also occupied by Dr. Fu-Manchu. This absolute certainty of the +Chinaman’s presence was evidenced, not by my senses, but only by an +inner consciousness, and the same that always awoke into life at the +approach not only of Fu-Manchu in person but of certain of his uncanny +servants. + +A faint perfume hung in the air about me; I do not mean that of any +essence or of any incense, but rather the smell which is suffused +by Oriental furniture, by Oriental draperies; the indefinable but +unmistakable perfume of the East. + +Thus, London has a distinct smell of its own, and so has Paris, whilst +the difference between Marseilles and Suez, for instance, is even more +marked. + +Now, the atmosphere surrounding me was Eastern, but not of the East that +I knew; rather it was Far Eastern. Perhaps I do not make myself very +clear, but to me there was a mysterious significance in that perfumed +atmosphere. I opened my eyes. + +I lay upon a long low settee, in a fairly large room which was furnished +as I had anticipated in an absolutely Oriental fashion. The two windows +were so screened as to have lost, from the interior point of view, all +resemblance to European windows, and the whole structure of the room had +been altered in conformity, bearing out my idea that the place had been +prepared for Fu-Manchu’s reception some time before his actual return. I +doubt if, East or West, a duplicate of that singular apartment could be +found. + +The end in which I lay, was, as I have said, typical of an Eastern +house, and a large, ornate lantern hung from the ceiling almost directly +above me. The further end of the room was occupied by tall cases, +some of them containing books, but the majority filled with scientific +paraphernalia; rows of flasks and jars, frames of test-tubes, retorts, +scales, and other objects of the laboratory. At a large and very finely +carved table sat Dr. Fu-Manchu, a yellow and faded volume open before +him, and some dark red fluid, almost like blood, bubbling in a test-tube +which he held over the flame of a Bunsen-burner. + +The enormously long nail of his right index finger rested upon the +opened page of the book to which he seemed constantly to refer, dividing +his attention between the volume, the contents of the test-tube, and the +progress of a second experiment, or possibly a part of the same, which +was taking place upon another corner of the littered table. + +A huge glass retort (the bulb was fully two feet in diameter), fitted +with a Liebig’s Condenser, rested in a metal frame, and within the bulb, +floating in an oily substance, was a fungus some six inches high, shaped +like a toadstool, but of a brilliant and venomous orange color. Three +flat tubes of light were so arranged as to cast violet rays upward into +the retort, and the receiver, wherein condensed the product of this +strange experiment, contained some drops of a red fluid which may have +been identical with that boiling in the test-tube. + +These things I perceived at a glance: then the filmy eyes of Dr. +Fu-Manchu were raised from the book, turned in my direction, and all +else was forgotten. + +“I regret,” came the sibilant voice, “that unpleasant measures were +necessary, but hesitation would have been fatal. I trust, Dr. Petrie, +that you suffer no inconvenience?” + +To this speech no reply was possible, and I attempted none. + +“You have long been aware of my esteem for your acquirements,” continued +the Chinaman, his voice occasionally touching deep guttural notes, “and +you will appreciate the pleasure which this visit affords me. I kneel +at the feet of my silver Buddha. I look to you, when you shall have +overcome your prejudices--due to ignorance of my true motives--to assist +me in establishing that intellectual control which is destined to be the +new World Force. I bear you no malice for your ancient enmity, and even +now”--he waved one yellow hand toward the retort--“I am conducting an +experiment designed to convert you from your misunderstanding, and to +adjust your perspective.” + +Quite unemotionally he spoke, then turned again to his book, his +test-tube and retort, in the most matter-of-fact way imaginable. I do +not think the most frenzied outburst on his part, the most fiendish +threats, could have produced such effect upon me as those cold and +carefully calculated words, spoken in that unique voice which rang about +the room sibilantly. In its tones, in the glance of the green eyes, +in the very pose of the gaunt, high-shouldered body, there was +power--force. + +I counted myself lost, and in view of the doctor’s words, studied the +progress of the experiment with frightful interest. But a few moments +sufficed in which to realize that, for all my training, I knew as little +of chemistry--of chemistry as understood by this man’s genius--as a +junior student in surgery knows of trephining. The process in +operation was a complete mystery to me; the means and the end alike +incomprehensible. + +Thus, in the heavy silence of that room, a silence only broken by the +regular bubbling from the test tube, I found my attention straying from +the table to the other objects surrounding it; and at one of them my +gaze stopped and remained chained with horror. + +It was a glass jar, some five feet in height and filled with viscous +fluid of a light amber color. Out from this peered a hideous, dog-like +face, low browed, with pointed ears and a nose almost hoggishly flat. +By the death-grin of the face the gleaming fangs were revealed; and the +body, the long yellow-gray body, rested, or seemed to rest, upon +short, malformed legs, whilst one long limp arm, the right, hung down +straightly in the preservative. The left arm had been severed above the +elbow. + +Fu-Manchu, finding his experiment to be proceeding favorably, lifted his +eyes to me again. + +“You are interested in my poor Cynocephalyte?” he said; and his eyes +were filmed like the eyes of one afflicted with cataract. “He was a +devoted servant, Dr. Petrie, but the lower influences in his genealogy, +sometimes conquered. Then he got out of hand; and at last he was so +ungrateful toward those who had educated him, that, in one of those +paroxysms of his, he attacked and killed a most faithful Burman, one of +my oldest followers.” + +Fu-Manchu returned to his experiment. + +Not the slightest emotion had he exhibited thus far, but had chatted +with me as any other scientist might chat with a friend who casually +visits his laboratory. The horror of the thing was playing havoc with +my own composure, however. There I lay, fettered, in the same room with +this man whose existence was a menace to the entire white race, whilst +placidly he pursued an experiment designed, if his own words were +believable, to cut me off from my kind--to wreak some change, +psychological or physiological I knew not; to place me, it might +be, upon a level with such brute-things as that which now hung, half +floating, in the glass jar! + +Something I knew of the history of that ghastly specimen, that thing +neither man nor ape; for within my own knowledge had it not attempted +the life of Nayland Smith, and was it not I who, with an ax, had maimed +it in the instant of one of its last slayings? + +Of these things Dr. Fu-Manchu was well aware, so that his placid speech +was doubly, trebly horrible to my ears. I sought, furtively, to move +my arms, only to realize that, as I had anticipated, the handcuffs +were chained to a ring in the wall behind me. The establishments of Dr. +Fu-Manchu were always well provided with such contrivances as these. + +I uttered a short, harsh laugh. Fu-Manchu stood up slowly from the +table, and, placing the test-tube in a rack, stood the latter carefully +upon a shelf at his side. + +“I am happy to find you in such good humor,” he said softly. “Other +affairs call me; and, in my absence, that profound knowledge of +chemistry, of which I have had evidence in the past, will enable you to +follow with intelligent interest the action of these violet rays upon +this exceptionally fine specimen of Siberian amanita muscaria. At some +future time, possibly when you are my guest in China--which country I am +now making arrangements for you to visit--I shall discuss with you some +lesser-known properties of this species; and I may say that one of your +first tasks when you commence your duties as assistant in my laboratory +in Kiang-su, will be to conduct a series of twelve experiments, which I +have outlined, into other potentialities of this unique fungus.” + +He walked quietly to a curtained doorway, with his cat-like yet awkward +gait, lifted the drapery, and, with a slight nod in my direction, went +out of the room. + + + +CHAPTER XX. THE CROSS BAR + +How long I lay there alone I had no means of computing. My mind was +busy with many matters, but principally concerned with my fate in the +immediate future. That Dr. Fu-Manchu entertained for me a singular +kind of regard, I had had evidence before. He had formed the erroneous +opinion that I was an advanced scientist who could be of use to him +in his experiments and I was aware that he cherished a project of +transporting me to some place in China where his principal laboratory +was situated. Respecting the means which he proposed to employ, I was +unlikely to forget that this man, who had penetrated further along +certain byways of science than seemed humanly possible, undoubtedly was +master of a process for producing artificial catalepsy. It was my lot, +then, to be packed in a chest (to all intents and purposes a dead man +for the time being) and despatched to the interior of China! + +What a fool I had been. To think that I had learned nothing from my long +and dreadful experience of the methods of Dr. Fu-Manchu; to think that I +had come alone in quest of him; that, leaving no trace behind me, I had +deliberately penetrated to his secret abode! + +I have said that my wrists were manacled behind me, the manacles being +attached to a chain fastened in the wall. I now contrived, with extreme +difficulty, to reverse the position of my hands; that is to say, I +climbed backward through the loop formed by my fettered arms, so that +instead of their being locked behind me, they now were locked in front. + +Then I began to examine the fetters, learning, as I had anticipated, +that they fastened with a lock. I sat gazing at the steel bracelets in +the light of the lamp which swung over my head, and it became apparent +to me that I had gained little by my contortion. + +A slight noise disturbed these unpleasant reveries. It was nothing less +than the rattling of keys! + +For a moment I wondered if I had heard aright, or if the sound portended +the coming of some servant of the doctor, who was locking up the +establishment for the night. The jangling sound was repeated, and in +such a way that I could not suppose it to be accidental. Some one was +deliberately rattling a small bunch of keys in an adjoining room. + +And now my heart leaped wildly--then seemed to stand still. + +With a low whistling cry a little gray shape shot through the doorway by +which Fu-Manchu had retired, and rolled, like a ball of fluff blown by +the wind, completely under the table which bore the weird scientific +appliances of the Chinaman; the advent of the gray object was +accompanied by a further rattling of keys. + +My fear left me, and a mighty anxiety took its place. This creature +which now crouched chattering at me from beneath the big table was +Fu-Manchu’s marmoset, and in the intervals of its chattering and +grimacing, it nibbled, speculatively, at the keys upon the ring which +it clutched in its tiny hands. Key after key it sampled in this manner, +evincing a growing dissatisfaction with the uncrackable nature of its +find. + +One of those keys might be that of the handcuffs! + +I could not believe that the tortures of Tantulus were greater than +were mine at this moment. In all my hopes of rescue or release, I +had included nothing so strange, so improbable as this. A sort of awe +possessed me; for if by this means the key which should release me +should come into my possession, how, ever again, could I doubt a +beneficent Providence? + +But they were not yet in my possession; moreover, the key of the +handcuffs might not be amongst the bunch. + +Were there no means whereby I could induce the marmoset to approach me? + +Whilst I racked my brains for some scheme, the little animal took the +matter out of my hands. Tossing the ring with its jangling contents +a yard or so across the carpet in my direction, it leaped in pursuit, +picked up the ring, whirled it over its head, and then threw a complete +somersault around it. Now it snatched up the keys again, and holding +them close to its ear, rattled them furiously. Finally, with an +incredible spring, it leaped onto the chain supporting the lamp above +my head, and with the garish shade swinging and spinning wildly, clung +there looking down at me like an acrobat on a trapeze. The tiny, bluish +face, completely framed in grotesque whiskers, enhanced the illusion of +an acrobatic comedian. Never for a moment did it release its hold upon +the key-ring. + +My suspense now was intolerable. I feared to move, lest, alarming the +marmoset, it should run off again, taking the keys with it. So as I lay +there, looking up at the little creature swinging above me, the second +wonder of the night came to pass. + +A voice that I could never forget, strive how I would, a voice that +haunted my dreams by night, and for which by day I was ever listening, +cried out from some adjoining room. + +“Ta’ala hina!” it called. “Ta’ala hina, Peko!” + +It was Karamaneh! + +The effect upon the marmoset was instantaneous. Down came the bunch of +keys upon one side of the shade, almost falling on my head, and down +leaped the ape upon the other. In two leaps it had traversed the room +and had vanished through the curtained doorway. + +If ever I had need of coolness it was now; the slightest mistake would +be fatal. The keys had slipped from the mattress of the divan, and now +lay just beyond reach of my fingers. Rapidly I changed my position, and +sought, without undue noise, to move the keys with my foot. + +I had actually succeeded in sliding them back on to the mattress, when, +unheralded by any audible footstep, Karamaneh came through the doorway, +holding the marmoset in her arms. She wore a dress of fragile muslin +material, and out from its folds protruded one silk-stockinged foot, +resting in a high-heeled red shoe.... + +For a moment she stood watching me, with a sort of enforced composure; +then her glance strayed to the keys lying upon the floor. Slowly, and +with her eyes fixed again upon my face, she crossed the room, stooped, +and took up the key-ring. + +It was one of the poignant moments of my life; for by that simple act +all my hopes had been shattered! + +Any poor lingering doubt that I may have had, left me now. Had the +slightest spark of friendship animated the bosom of Karamaneh most +certainly she would have overlooked the presence of the keys--of the +keys which represented my one hope of escape from the clutches of the +fiendish Chinaman. + +There is a silence more eloquent than words. For half a minute or more, +Karamaneh stood watching me--forcing herself to watch me--and I looked +up at her with a concentrated gaze in which rage and reproach must have +been strangely mingled. What eyes she had!--of that blackly lustrous +sort nearly always associated with unusually dark complexions; but +Karamaneh’s complexion was peachlike, or rather of an exquisite and +delicate fairness which reminded me of the petal of a rose. By some I +had been accused of raving about this girl’s beauty, but only by those +who had not met her; for indeed she was astonishingly lovely. + +At last her eyes fell, the long lashes drooped upon her cheeks. She +turned and walked slowly to the chair in which Fu-Manchu had sat. +Placing the keys upon the table amid the scientific litter, she rested +one dimpled elbow upon the yellow page of the book, and with her chin in +her palm, again directed upon me that enigmatical gaze. + +I dared not think of the past, of the past in which this beautiful, +treacherous girl had played a part; yet, watching her, I could not +believe, even now, that she was false! My state was truly a pitiable +one; I could have cried out in sheer anguish. With her long lashes +partly lowered, she watched me awhile, then spoke; and her voice was +music which seemed to mock me; every inflection of that elusive accent +reopened, lancet-like, the ancient wound. + +“Why do you look at me so?” she said, almost in a whisper. “By what +right do you reproach me?--Have you ever offered me friendship, that I +should repay you with friendship? When first you came to the house where +I was, by the river--came to save some one from” (there was the familiar +hesitation which always preceded the name of Fu-Manchu) “from--him, you +treated me as your enemy, although--I would have been your friend...” + +There was appeal in the soft voice, but I laughed mockingly, and threw +myself back upon the divan. + +Karamaneh stretched out her hands toward me, and I shall never forget +the expression which flashed into those glorious eyes; but, seeing me +intolerant of her appeal, she drew back and quickly turned her head +aside. Even in this hour of extremity, of impotent wrath, I could find +no contempt in my heart for her feeble hypocrisy; with all the +old wonder I watched that exquisite profile, and Karamaneh’s very +deceitfulness was a salve--for had she not cared she would not have +attempted it! + +Suddenly she stood up, taking the keys in her hands, and approached me. + +“Not by word, nor by look,” she said, quietly, “have you asked for my +friendship, but because I cannot bear you to think of me as you do, I +will prove that I am not the hypocrite and the liar you think me. You +will not trust me, but I will trust you.” + +I looked up into her eyes, and knew a pagan joy when they faltered +before my searching gaze. She threw herself upon her knees beside me, +and the faint exquisite perfume inseparable from my memories of her, +became perceptible, and seemed as of old to intoxicate me. The lock +clicked... and I was free. + +Karamaneh rose swiftly to her feet as I stood upright and outstretched +my cramped arms. For one delirious moment her bewitching face was close +to mine, and the dictates of madness almost ruled; but I clenched my +teeth and turned sharply aside. I could not trust myself to speak. + +With Fu-Manchu’s marmoset again gamboling before us, she walked through +the curtained doorway into the room beyond. It was in darkness, but +I could see the slave-girl in front of me, a slim silhouette, as she +walked to a screened window, and, opening the screen in the manner of a +folding door, also threw up the window. + +“Look!” she whispered. + +I crept forward and stood beside her. I found myself looking down into +Museum Street from a first-floor window! Belated traffic still passed +along New Oxford Street on the left, but not a solitary figure was +visible to the right, as far as I could see, and that was nearly to the +railings of the Museum. Immediately opposite, in one of the flats which +I had noticed earlier in the evening, another window was opened. I +turned, and in the reflected light saw that Karamaneh held a cord in her +hand. Our eyes met in the semi-darkness. + +She began to haul the cord into the window, and, looking upward, I +perceived that it was looped in some way over the telegraph cables which +crossed the street at that point. It was a slender cord, and it appeared +to be passed across a joint in the cables almost immediately above the +center of the roadway. As it was hauled in, a second and stronger line +attached to it was pulled, in turn, over the cables, and thence in by +the window. Karamaneh twisted a length of it around a metal bracket +fastened in the wall, and placed a light wooden crossbar in my hand. + +“Make sure that there is no one in the street,” she said, craning out +and looking to right and left, “then swing across. The length of the +rope is just sufficient to enable you to swing through the open window +opposite, and there is a mattress inside to drop upon. But release the +bar immediately, or you may be dragged back. The door of the room in +which you will find yourself is unlocked, and you have only to walk down +the stairs and out into the street.” + +I peered at the crossbar in my hand, then looked hard at the girl beside +me. I missed something of the old fire of her nature; she was very +subdued, tonight. + +“Thank you, Karamaneh,” I said, softly. + +She suppressed a little cry as I spoke her name, and drew back into the +shadows. + +“I believe you are my friend,” I said, “but I cannot understand. Won’t +you help me to understand?” + +I took her unresisting hand, and drew her toward me. My very soul seemed +to thrill at the contact of her lithe body... + +She was trembling wildly and seemed to be trying to speak, but although +her lips framed the words no sound followed. Suddenly comprehension came +to me. I looked down into the street, hitherto deserted... and into the +upturned face of Fu-Manchu. + +Wearing a heavy fur-collared coat, and with his yellow, malignant +countenance grotesquely horrible beneath the shade of a large tweed +motor cap, he stood motionless, looking up at me. That he had seen me, I +could not doubt; but had he seen my companion? + +In a choking whisper Karamaneh answered my unspoken question. + +“He has not seen me! I have done much for you; do in return a small +thing for me. Save my life!” + +She dragged me back from the window and fled across the room to the +weird laboratory where I had lain captive. Throwing herself upon the +divan, she held out her white wrists and glanced significantly at the +manacles. + +“Lock them upon me!” she said, rapidly. “Quick! quick!” + +Great as was my mental disturbance, I managed to grasp the purpose of +this device. The very extremity of my danger found me cool. I fastened +the manacles, which so recently had confined my own wrists, upon the +slim wrists of Karamaneh. A faint and muffled disturbance, doubly +ominous because there was nothing to proclaim its nature, reached me +from some place below, on the ground floor. + +“Tie something around my mouth!” directed Karamaneh with nervous +rapidity. As I began to look about me:--“Tear a strip from my dress,” + she said; “do not hesitate--be quick! be quick!” + +I seized the flimsy muslin and tore off half a yard or so from the hem +of the skirt. The voice of Dr Fu-Manchu became audible. He was speaking +rapidly, sibilantly, and evidently was approaching--would be upon me +in a matter of moments. I fastened the strip of fabric over the girl’s +mouth and tied it behind, experiencing a pang half pleasurable and half +fearful as I found my hands in contact with the foamy luxuriance of her +hair. + +Dr. Fu-Manchu was entering the room immediately beyond. + +Snatching up the bunch of keys, I turned and ran, for in another instant +my retreat would be cut off. As I burst once more into the darkened +room I became aware that a door on the further side of it was open; +and framed in the opening was the tall, high-shouldered figure of the +Chinaman, still enveloped in his fur coat and wearing the grotesque +cap. As I saw him, so he perceived me; and as I sprang to the window, he +advanced. + +I turned desperately and hurled the bunch of keys with all my force into +the dimly-seen face... + +Either because they possessed a chatoyant quality of their own (as I had +often suspected), or by reason of the light reflected through the open +window, the green eyes gleamed upon me vividly like those of a giant +cat. One short guttural exclamation paid tribute to the accuracy of +my aim; then I had the crossbar in my hand. I threw one leg across +the sill, and dire as was my extremity, hesitated for an instant ere +trusting myself to the flight... + +A vise-like grip fastened upon my left ankle. + +Hazily I became aware that the dark room was flooded with figures. The +whole yellow gang were upon me--the entire murder-group composed of +units recruited from the darkest place of the East! + +I have never counted myself a man of resource, and have always envied +Nayland Smith his possession of that quality, in him extraordinarily +developed; but on this occasion the gods were kind to me, and I +resorted to the only device, perhaps, which could have saved me. Without +releasing my hold upon the crossbar, I clutched at the ledge with the +fingers of both hands and swung back into the room my right leg, which +was already across the sill. With all my strength I kicked out. My heel +came in contact, in sickening contact, with a human head; beyond doubt +that I had split the skull of the man who held me. + +The grip upon my ankle was released automatically; and now consigning +all my weight to the rope I slipped forward, as a diver, across the +broad ledge and found myself sweeping through the night like a winged +thing... + +The line, as Karamaneh had assured me, was of well-judged length. Down I +swept to within six or seven feet of the street level, then up, at ever +decreasing speed, toward the vague oblong of the open window beyond. + +I hope I have been successful, in some measure, in portraying the varied +emotions which it was my lot to experience that night, and it may well +seem that nothing more exquisite could remain for me. Yet it was written +otherwise; for as I swept up to my goal, describing the inevitable arc +which I had no power to check, I saw that one awaited me. + +Crouching forward half out of the open window was a Burmese dacoit, a +cross-eyed, leering being whom I well remembered to have encountered +two years before in my dealings with Dr. Fu-Manchu. One bare, sinewy +arm held rigidly at right angles before his breast, he clutched a long +curved knife and waited--waited--for the critical moment when my throat +should be at his mercy! + +I have said that a strange coolness had come to my aid; even now it did +not fail me, and so incalculably rapid are the workings of the human +mind that I remember complimenting myself upon an achievement which +Smith himself could not have bettered, and this in the immeasurable +interval which intervened between the commencement of my upward swing +and my arrival on a level with the window. + +I threw my body back and thrust my feet forward. As my legs went through +the opening, an acute pain in one calf told me that I was not to escape +scatheless from the night’s melee. But the dacoit went rolling over in +the darkness of the room, as helpless in face of that ramrod stroke as +the veriest infant... + +Back I swept upon my trapeze, a sight to have induced any passing +citizen to question his sanity. With might and main I sought to check +the swing of the pendulum, for if I should come within reach of the +window behind I doubted not that other knives awaited me. It was no +difficult feat, and I succeeded in checking my flight. Swinging there +above Museum Street I could even appreciate, so lucid was my mind, the +ludicrous element of the situation. + +I dropped. My wounded leg almost failed me; and greatly shaken, but +with no other serious damage, I picked myself up from the dust of the +roadway. It was a mockery of Fate that the problem which Nayland Smith +had set me to solve, should have been solved thus; for I could not doubt +that by means of the branch of a tall tree or some other suitable object +situated opposite to Smith’s house in Rangoon, Karamaneh had made her +escape as tonight I had made mine. + +Apart from the acute pain in my calf I knew that the dacoit’s knife had +bitten deeply, by reason of the fact that a warm liquid was trickling +down into my boot. Like any drunkard I stood there in the middle of the +road looking up at the vacant window where the dacoit had been, and up +at the window above the shop of J. Salaman where I knew Fu-Manchu to be. +But for some reason the latter window had been closed or almost closed, +and as I stood there this reason became apparent to me. + +The sound of running footsteps came from the direction of New Oxford +Street. I turned--to see two policemen bearing down upon me! + +This was a time for quick decisions and prompt action. I weighed all +the circumstances in the balance, and made the last vital choice of the +night; I turned and ran toward the British Museum as though the worst of +Fu-Manchu’s creatures, and not my allies the police, were at my heels! + +No one else was in sight, but, as I whirled into the Square, the red +lamp of a slowly retreating taxi became visible some hundred yards to +the left. My leg was paining me greatly, but the nature of the wound +did not interfere with my progress; therefore I continued my headlong +career, and ere the police had reached the end of Museum Street I had my +hand upon the door handle of the cab--for, the Fates being persistently +kind to me, the vehicle was for hire. + +“Dr. Cleeve’s, Harley Street!” I shouted at the man. “Drive like hell! +It’s an urgent case.” + +I leaped into the cab. + +Within five seconds from the time that I slammed the door and dropped +back panting upon the cushions, we were speeding westward toward the +house of the famous pathologist, thereby throwing the police hopelessly +off the track. + +Faintly to my ears came the purr of a police whistle. The taxi-man +evidently did not hear the significant sound. Merciful Providence had +rung down the curtain; for to-night my role in the yellow drama was +finished. + + + +CHAPTER XXI. CRAGMIRE TOWER + +Less than two hours later, Inspector Weymouth and a party of men from +Scotland Yard raided the house in Museum Street. They found the stock +of J. Salaman practically intact, and, in the strangely appointed rooms +above, every evidence of a hasty outgoing. But of the instruments, drugs +and other laboratory paraphernalia not one item remained. I would gladly +have given my income for a year, to have gained possession of the books, +alone; for, beyond all shadow of doubt, I knew them to contain formula +calculated to revolutionize the science of medicine. + +Exhausted, physically and mentally, and with my mind a +whispering-gallery of conjectures (it were needless for me to mention +whom respecting) I turned in, gratefully, having patched up the slight +wound in my calf. + +I seemed scarcely to have closed my eyes, when Nayland Smith was shaking +me into wakefulness. + +“You are probably tired out,” he said; “but your crazy expedition of +last night entitles you to no sympathy. Read this; there is a train +in an hour. We will reserve a compartment and you can resume your +interrupted slumbers in a corner seat.” + +As I struggled upright in bed, rubbing my eyes sleepily, Smith handed +me the Daily Telegraph, pointing to the following paragraph upon the +literary page: + +Messrs. M---- announce that they will publish shortly the long delayed +work of Kegan Van Roon, the celebrated American traveler, Orientalist +and psychic investigator, dealing with his recent inquiries in China. It +will be remembered that Mr. Van Roon undertook to motor from Canton +to Siberia last winter, but met with unforeseen difficulties in the +province of Ho-Nan. He fell into the hands of a body of fanatics and was +fortunate to escape with his life. His book will deal in particular with +his experiences in Ho-Nan, and some sensational revelations regarding +the awakening of that most mysterious race, the Chinese, are promised. +For reasons of his own he has decided to remain in England until the +completion of his book (which will be published simultaneously in New +York and London) and has leased Cragmire Tower, Somersetshire, in which +romantic and historical residence he will collate his notes and +prepare for the world a work ear-marked as a classic even before it is +published. + +I glanced up from the paper, to find Smith’s eyes fixed upon me, +inquiringly. + +“From what I have been able to learn,” he said, evenly, “we should reach +Saul, with decent luck, just before dusk.” + +As he turned, and quitted the room without another word, I realized, in +a flash, the purport of our mission; I understood my friend’s ominous +calm, betokening suppressed excitement. + +The Fates were with us (or so it seemed); and whereas we had not hoped +to gain Saul before sunset, as a matter of fact, the autumn afternoon +was in its most glorious phase as we left the little village with its +oldtime hostelry behind us and set out in an easterly direction, with +the Bristol Channel far away on our left and a gently sloping upland on +our right. + +The crooked high-street practically constituted the entire hamlet of +Saul, and the inn, “The Wagoners,” was the last house in the street. +Now, as we followed the ribbon of moor-path to the top of the rise, we +could stand and look back upon the way we had come; and although we had +covered fully a mile of ground, it was possible to detect the sunlight +gleaming now and then upon the gilt lettering of the inn sign as it +swayed in the breeze. The day had been unpleasantly warm, but was +relieved by this same sea breeze, which, although but slight, had in it +the tang of the broad Atlantic. Behind us, then, the foot-path sloped +down to Saul, unpeopled by any living thing; east and northeast swelled +the monotony of the moor right out to the hazy distance where the sky +began and the sea remotely lay hidden; west fell the gentle gradient +from the top of the slope which we had mounted, and here, as far as the +eye could reach, the country had an appearance suggestive of a huge +and dried-up lake. This idea was borne out by an odd blotchiness, for +sometimes there would be half a mile or more of seeming moorland, then +a sharply defined change (or it seemed sharply defined from that +bird’s-eye point of view). A vivid greenness marked these changes, which +merged into a dun-colored smudge and again into the brilliant green; +then the moor would begin once more. + +“That will be the Tor of Glastonbury, I suppose,” said Smith, suddenly +peering through his field-glasses in an easterly direction; “and yonder, +unless I am greatly mistaken, is Cragmire Tower.” + +Shading my eyes with my hand, I also looked ahead, and saw the place for +which we were bound; one of those round towers, more common in Ireland, +which some authorities have declared to be of Phoenician origin. +Ramshackle buildings clustered untidily about its base, and to it a sort +of tongue of that oddly venomous green which patched the lowlands, shot +out and seemed almost to reach the towerbase. The land for miles around +was as flat as the palm of my hand, saving certain hummocks, lesser +tors, and irregular piles of boulders which dotted its expanse. Hills +and uplands there were in the hazy distance, forming a sort of mighty +inland bay which I doubted not in some past age had been covered by +the sea. Even in the brilliant sunlight the place had something of +a mournful aspect, looking like a great dried-up pool into which the +children of giants had carelessly cast stones. + +We met no living soul upon the moor. With Cragmire Tower but a quarter +of a mile off, Smith paused again, and raising his powerful glasses +swept the visible landscape. + +“Not a sign. Petrie,” he said, softly; “yet...” + +Dropping the glasses back into their case, my companion began to tug at +his left ear. + +“Have we been over-confident?” he said, narrowing his eyes in +speculative fashion. “No less than three times I have had the idea that +something, or some one, has just dropped out of sight, behind me, as I +focused...” + +“What do you mean, Smith?” + +“Are we”--he glanced about him as though the vastness were peopled with +listening Chinamen--“followed?” + +Silently we looked into one another’s eyes, each seeking for the dread +which neither had named. Then: + +“Come on Petrie!” said Smith, grasping my arm; and at quick march we +were off again. + +Cragmire Tower stood upon a very slight eminence, and what had looked +like a green tongue, from the moorland slopes above, was in fact a +creek, flanked by lush land, which here found its way to the sea. +The house which we were come to visit consisted in a low, two-story +building, joining the ancient tower on the east with two smaller +outbuildings. There was a miniature kitchen-garden, and a few stunted +fruit trees in the northwest corner; the whole being surrounded by a +gray stone wall. + +The shadow of the tower fell sharply across the path, which ran up +almost alongside of it. We were both extremely warm by reason of our +long and rapid walk on that hot day, and this shade should have been +grateful to us. In short, I find it difficult to account for the +unwelcome chill which I experienced at the moment that I found myself +at the foot of the time-worn monument. I know that we both pulled up +sharply and looked at one another as though acted upon by some mutual +disturbance. + +But not a sound broke the stillness save a remote murmuring, until a +solitary sea gull rose in the air and circled directly over the tower, +uttering its mournful and unmusical cry. Automatically to my mind sprang +the lines of the poem: + + Far from all brother-men, in the weird of the fen, + With God’s creatures I bide, ‘mid the birds that I ken; + Where the winds ever dree, where the hymn of the sea + Brings a message of peace from the ocean to me. + +Not a soul was visible about the premises; there was no sound of human +activity and no dog barked. Nayland Smith drew a long breath, glanced +back along the way we had come, then went on, following the wall, I +beside him, until we came to the gate. It was unfastened, and we walked +up the stone path through a wilderness of weeds. Four windows of the +house were visible, two on the ground floor and two above. Those on +the ground floor were heavily boarded up, those above, though glazed, +boasted neither blinds nor curtains. Cragmire Tower showed not the +slightest evidence of tenancy. + +We mounted three steps and stood before a tremendously massive oaken +door. An iron bell-pull, ancient and rusty, hung on the right of the +door, and Smith, giving me an odd glance, seized the ring and tugged it. + +From somewhere within the building answered a mournful clangor, a +cracked and toneless jangle, which, seeming to echo through empty +apartments, sought and found an exit apparently by way of one of the +openings in the round tower; for it was from above our heads that the +noise came to us. + +It died away, that eerie ringing--that clanging so dismal that it could +chill my heart even then with the bright sunlight streaming down out of +the blue; it awoke no other response than the mournful cry of the sea +gull circling over our heads. Silence fell. We looked at one another, +and we were both about to express a mutual doubt when, unheralded by +any unfastening of bolts or bars, the oaken door was opened, and a huge +mulatto, dressed in white, stood there regarding us. + +I started nervously, for the apparition was so unexpected, but Nayland +Smith, without evidence of surprise, thrust a card into the man’s hand. + +“Take my card to Mr. Van Roon, and say that I wish to see him on +important business,” he directed, authoritatively. + +The mulatto bowed and retired. His white figure seemed to be swallowed +up by the darkness within, for beyond the patch of uncarpeted floor +revealed by the peeping sunlight, was a barn-like place of densest +shadow. I was about to speak, but Smith laid his hand upon my arm +warningly, as, out from the shadows the mulatto returned. He stood on +the right of the door and bowed again. + +“Be pleased to enter,” he said, in his harsh, negro voice. “Mr. Van Roon +will see you.” + +The gladness of the sun could no longer stir me; a chill and sense of +foreboding bore me company, as beside Nayland Smith I entered Cragmire +Tower. + + + +CHAPTER XXII. THE MULATTO + +The room in which Van Roon received us was roughly of the shape of an +old-fashioned keyhole; one end of it occupied the base of the tower, +upon which the remainder had evidently been built. In many respects +it was a singular room, but the feature which caused me the greatest +amazement was this:--it had no windows! + +In the deep alcove formed by the tower sat Van Roon at a littered table, +upon which stood an oil reading-lamp, green shaded, of the “Victoria” + pattern, to furnish the entire illumination of the apartment. That +bookshelves lined the rectangular portion of this strange study I +divined, although that end of the place was dark as a catacomb. The +walls were wood-paneled, and the ceiling was oaken beamed. A small +bookshelf and tumble-down cabinet stood upon either side of the table, +and the celebrated American author and traveler lay propped up in a long +split-cane chair. He wore smoked glasses, and had a clean-shaven, olive +face, with a profusion of jet black hair. He was garbed in a dirty red +dressing-gown, and a perfect fog of cigar smoke hung in the room. He did +not rise to greet us, but merely extended his right hand, between two +fingers whereof he held Smith’s card. + +“You will excuse the seeming discourtesy of an invalid, gentlemen?” he +said; “but I am suffering from undue temerity in the interior of China!” + +He waved his hand vaguely, and I saw that two rough deal chairs stood +near the table. Smith and I seated ourselves, and my friend, leaning his +elbow upon the table, looked fixedly at the face of the man whom we +had come from London to visit. Although comparatively unfamiliar to the +British public, the name of Van Roon was well-known in American literary +circles; for he enjoyed in the United States a reputation somewhat +similar to that which had rendered the name of our mutual friend, +Sir Lionel Barton, a household word in England. It was Van Roon who, +following in the footsteps of Madame Blavatsky, had sought out the +haunts of the fabled mahatmas in the Himalayas, and Van Roon who had +essayed to explore the fever swamps of Yucatan in quest of the secret +of lost Atlantis; lastly, it was Van Roon, who, with an overland car +specially built for him by a celebrated American firm, had undertaken +the journey across China. + +I studied the olive face with curiosity. Its natural impassivity was +so greatly increased by the presence of the colored spectacles that my +study was as profitless as if I had scrutinized the face of a carven +Buddha. The mulatto had withdrawn, and in an atmosphere of gloom and +tobacco smoke, Smith and I sat staring, perhaps rather rudely, at the +object of our visit to the West Country. + +“Mr. Van Roon,” began my friend abruptly, “you will no doubt have seen +this paragraph. It appeared in this morning’s Daily Telegraph.” + +He stood up, and taking out the cutting from his notebook, placed it on +the table. + +“I have seen this--yes,” said Van Roon, revealing a row of even, white +teeth in a rapid smile. “Is it to this paragraph that I owe the pleasure +of seeing you here?” + +“The paragraph appeared in this morning’s issue,” replied Smith. “An +hour from the time of seeing it, my friend, Dr. Petrie, and I were +entrained for Bridgewater.” + +“Your visit delights me, gentlemen, and I should be ungrateful to +question its cause; but frankly I am at a loss to understand why you +should have honored me thus. I am a poor host, God knows; for what +with my tortured limb, a legacy from the Chinese devils whose secrets I +surprised, and my semi-blindness, due to the same cause, I am but sorry +company.” + +Nayland Smith held up his right hand deprecatingly. Van Roon tendered a +box of cigars and clapped his hands, whereupon the mulatto entered. + +“I see that you have a story to tell me, Mr. Smith,” he said; “therefore +I suggest whisky-and-soda--or you might prefer tea, as it is nearly tea +time?” + +Smith and I chose the former refreshment, and the soft-footed half-breed +having departed upon his errand, my companion, leaning forward earnestly +across the littered table, outlined for Van Roon the story of Dr. +Fu-Manchu, the great and malign being whose mission in England at that +moment was none other than the stoppage of just such information as our +host was preparing to give to the world. + +“There is a giant conspiracy, Mr. Van Roon,” he said, “which had its +birth in this very province of Ho-Nan, from which you were so fortunate +to escape alive; whatever its scope or limitations, a great secret +society is established among the yellow races. It means that China, +which has slumbered for so many generations, now stirs in that age-long +sleep. I need not tell you how much more it means, this seething in the +pot...” + +“In a word,” interrupted Van Roon, pushing Smith’s glass across the +table “you would say?--” + +“That your life is not worth that!” replied Smith, snapping his fingers +before the other’s face. + +A very impressive silence fell. I watched Van Roon curiously as he sat +propped up among his cushions, his smooth face ghastly in the green +light from the lamp-shade. He held the stump of a cigar between his +teeth, but, apparently unnoticed by him, it had long since gone out. +Smith, out of the shadows, was watching him, too. Then: + +“Your information is very disturbing,” said the American. “I am the more +disposed to credit your statement because I am all too painfully aware +of the existence of such a group as you mention, in China, but that they +had an agent here in England is something I had never conjectured. In +seeking out this solitary residence I have unwittingly done much to +assist their designs... But--my dear Mr. Smith, I am very remiss! Of +course you will remain tonight, and I trust for some days to come?” + +Smith glanced rapidly across at me, then turned again to our host. + +“It seems like forcing our company upon you,” he said, “but in your +own interests I think it will be best to do as you are good enough to +suggest. I hope and believe that our arrival here has not been noticed +by the enemy; therefore it will be well if we remain concealed as much +as possible for the present, until we have settled upon some plan.” + +“Hagar shall go to the station for your baggage,” said the American +rapidly, and clapped his hands, his usual signal to the mulatto. + +Whilst the latter was receiving his orders I noticed Nayland Smith +watching him closely; and when he had departed: + +“How long has that man been in your service?” snapped my friend. + +Van Roon peered blindly through his smoked glasses. + +“For some years,” he replied; “he was with me in India--and in China.” + +“Where did you engage him?” + +“Actually, in St. Kitts.” + +“H’m,” muttered Smith, and automatically he took out and began to fill +his pipe. + +“I can offer you no company but my own, gentlemen,” continued Van Roon, +“but unless it interferes with your plans, you may find the surrounding +district of interest and worthy of inspection, between now and dinner +time. By the way, I think I can promise you quite a satisfactory meal, +for Hagar is a model chef.” + +“A walk would be enjoyable,” said Smith, “but dangerous.” + +“Ah! perhaps you are right. Evidently you apprehend some attempt upon +me?” + +“At any moment!” + +“To one in my crippled condition, an alarming outlook! However, I place +myself unreservedly in your hands. But really, you must not leave this +interesting district before you have made the acquaintance of some of +its historical spots. To me, steeped as I am in what I may term the lore +of the odd, it is a veritable wonderland, almost as interesting, in +its way, as the caves and jungles of Hindustan depicted by Madame +Blavatsky.” + +His high-pitched voice, with a certain labored intonation, not quite +so characteristically American as was his accent, rose even higher; he +spoke with the fire of the enthusiast. + +“When I learned that Cragmire Tower was vacant,” he continued, “I leaped +at the chance (excuse the metaphor, from a lame man!). This is a +ghost hunter’s paradise. The tower itself is of unknown origin, though +probably Phoenician, and the house traditionally sheltered Dr. Macleod, +the necromancer, after his flight from the persecution of James of +Scotland. Then, to add to its interest, it borders on Sedgemoor, +the scene of the bloody battle during the Monmouth rising, whereat a +thousand were slain on the field. It is a local legend that the unhappy +Duke and his staff may be seen, on stormy nights, crossing the path +which skirts the mire, after which this building is named, with flaming +torches held aloft.” + +“Merely marsh-lights, I take it?” interjected Smith, gripping his pipe +hard between his teeth. + +“Your practical mind naturally seeks a practical explanation,” smiled +Van Roon, “but I myself have other theories. Then in addition to the +charms of Sedgemoor--haunted Sedgemoor--on a fine day it is quite +possible to see the ruins of Glastonbury Abbey from here; and +Glastonbury Abbey, as you may know, is closely bound up with the history +of alchemy. It was in the ruins of Glastonbury Abbey that the adept +Kelly, companion of Dr. Dee, discovered, in the reign of Elizabeth, the +famous caskets of St. Dunstan, containing the two tinctures...” + +So he ran on, enumerating the odd charms of his residence, charms which +for my part I did not find appealing. Finally: + +“We cannot presume further upon your kindness,” said Nayland Smith, +standing up. “No doubt we can amuse ourselves in the neighborhood of the +house until the return of your servant.” + +“Look upon Cragmire Tower as your own, gentlemen!” cried Van Roon. “Most +of the rooms are unfurnished, and the garden is a wilderness, but +the structure of the brickwork in the tower may interest you +archaeologically, and the view across the moor is at least as fine as +any in the neighborhood.” + +So, with his brilliant smile and a gesture of one thin yellow hand, the +crippled traveler made us free of his odd dwelling. As I passed out from +the room close at Smith’s heels, I glanced back, I cannot say why. +Van Roon already was bending over his papers, in his green shadowed +sanctuary, and the light shining down upon his smoked glasses created +the odd illusion that he was looking over the tops of the lenses and not +down at the table as his attitude suggested. However, it was probably +ascribable to the weird chiaroscuro of the scene, although it gave the +seated figure an oddly malignant appearance, and I passed out through +the utter darkness of the outer room to the front door. Smith opening +it, I was conscious of surprise to find dusk come--to meet darkness +where I had looked for sunlight. + +The silver wisps which had raced along the horizon, as we came to +Cragmire Tower, had been harbingers of other and heavier banks. A stormy +sunset smeared crimson streaks across the skyline, where a great range +of clouds, like the oily smoke of a city burning, was banked, mountain +topping mountain, and lighted from below by this angry red. As we came +down the steps and out by the gate, I turned and looked across the moor +behind us. A sort of reflection from this distant blaze encrimsoned the +whole landscape. The inland bay glowed sullenly, as if internal fires +and not reflected light were at work; a scene both wild and majestic. + +Nayland Smith was staring up at the cone-like top of the ancient tower +in a curious, speculative fashion. Under the influence of our host’s +conversation I had forgotten the reasonless dread which had touched me +at the moment of our arrival, but now, with the red light blazing over +Sedgemoor, as if in memory of the blood which had been shed there, +and with the tower of unknown origin looming above me, I became very +uncomfortable again, nor did I envy Van Roon his eerie residence. The +proximity of a tower of any kind, at night, makes in some inexplicable +way for awe, and to-night there were other agents, too. + +“What’s that?” snapped Smith suddenly, grasping my arm. + +He was peering southward, toward the distant hamlet, and, starting +violently at his words and the sudden grasp of his hand, I, too, stared +in that direction. + +“We were followed, Petrie,” he almost whispered. “I never got a sight of +our follower, but I’ll swear we were followed. Look! there’s something +moving over yonder!” + +Together we stood staring into the dusk; then Smith burst abruptly into +one of his rare laughs, and clapped me upon the shoulder. + +“It’s Hagar, the mulatto!” he cried--“and our grips. That extraordinary +American with his tales of witch-lights and haunted abbeys has been +playing the devil with our nerves.” + +Together we waited by the gate until the half-caste appeared on the bend +of the path with a grip in either hand. He was a great, muscular fellow +with a stoic face, and, for the purpose of visiting Saul, presumably, +he had doffed his white raiment and now wore a sort of livery, with a +peaked cap. + +Smith watched him enter the house. Then: + +“I wonder where Van Roon obtains his provisions and so forth,” he +muttered. “It’s odd they knew nothing about the new tenant of Cragmire +Tower at ‘The Wagoners.’” + +There came a sort of sudden expectancy into his manner for which I found +myself at a loss to account. He turned his gaze inland and stood there +tugging at his left ear and clicking his teeth together. He stared at +me, and his eyes looked very bright in the dusk, for a sort of red glow +from the sunset touched them; but he spoke no word, merely taking my +arm and leading me off on a rambling walk around and about the house. +Neither of us spoke a word until we stood at the gate of Cragmire Tower +again; then: + +“I’ll swear, now, that we were followed here today!” muttered Smith. + +The lofty place immediately within the doorway proved, in the light of a +lamp now fixed in an iron bracket, to be a square entrance hall meagerly +furnished. The closed study door faced the entrance, and on the left of +it ascended an open staircase up which the mulatto led the way. We found +ourselves on the floor above, in a corridor traversing the house from +back to front. An apartment on the immediate left was indicated by the +mulatto as that allotted to Smith. It was a room of fair size, furnished +quite simply but boasting a wardrobe cupboard, and Smith’s grip stood +beside the white enameled bed. I glanced around, and then prepared to +follow the man, who had awaited me in the doorway. + +He still wore his dark livery, and as I followed the lithe, +broad-shouldered figure along the corridor, I found myself considering +critically his breadth of shoulder and the extraordinary thickness of +his neck. + +I have repeatedly spoken of a sort of foreboding, an elusive stirring in +the depths of my being of which I became conscious at certain times +in my dealings with Dr. Fu-Manchu and his murderous servants. This +sensation, or something akin to it, claimed me now, unaccountably, as +I stood looking into the neat bedroom, on the same side of the corridor +but at the extreme end, wherein I was to sleep. + +A voiceless warning urged me to return; a kind of childish panic came +fluttering about my heart, a dread of entering the room, of allowing the +mulatto to come behind me. + +Doubtless this was no more than a sub-conscious product of my +observations respecting his abnormal breadth of shoulder. But whatever +the origin of the impulse, I found myself unable to disobey it. +Therefore, I merely nodded, turned on my heel and went back to Smith’s +room. + +I closed the door, then turned to face Smith, who stood regarding me. + +“Smith,” I said, “that man sends cold water trickling down my spine!” + +Still regarding me fixedly, my friend nodded his head. + +“You are curiously sensitive to this sort of thing,” he replied slowly; +“I have noticed it before as a useful capacity. I don’t like the look of +the man myself. The fact that he has been in Van Roon’s employ for some +years goes for nothing. We are neither of us likely to forget Kwee, +the Chinese servant of Sir Lionel Barton, and it is quite possible that +Fu-Manchu has corrupted this man as he corrupted the other. It is quite +possible...” + +His voice trailed off into silence, and he stood looking across the room +with unseeing eyes, meditating deeply. It was quite dark now outside, as +I could see through the uncurtained window, which opened upon the dreary +expanse stretching out to haunted Sedgemoor. Two candles were burning +upon the dressing table; they were but recently lighted, and so intense +was the stillness that I could distinctly hear the spluttering of one of +the wicks, which was damp. Without giving the slightest warning of his +intention, Smith suddenly made two strides forward, stretched out his +long arms, and snuffed the pair of candles in a twinkling. + +The room became plunged in impenetrable darkness. + +“Not a word, Petrie!” whispered my companion. + +I moved cautiously to join him, but as I did so, perceived that he was +moving too. Vaguely, against the window I perceived him silhouetted. He +was looking out across the moor, and: + +“See! see!” he hissed. + +With my heart thumping furiously in my breast, I bent over him; and for +the second time since our coming to Cragmire Tower, my thoughts flew to +“The Fenman.” + + There are shades in the fen; ghosts of women and men + Who have sinned and have died, but are living again. + O’er the waters they tread, with their lanterns of dread, + And they peer in the pools--in the pools of the dead... + +A light was dancing out upon the moor, a witchlight that came and went +unaccountably, up and down, in and out, now clearly visible, now masked +in the darkness! + +“Lock the door!” snapped my companion--“if there’s a key.” + +I crept across the room and fumbled for a moment; then: + +“There is no key,” I reported. + +“Then wedge the chair under the knob and let no one enter until I +return!” he said, amazingly. + +With that he opened the window to its fullest extent, threw his leg over +the sill, and went creeping along a wide concrete ledge, in which ran a +leaded gutter, in the direction of the tower on the right! + +Not pausing to follow his instructions respecting the chair, I craned +out of the window, watching his progress, and wondering with what sudden +madness he was bitten. Indeed, I could not credit my senses, could not +believe that I heard and saw aright. Yet there out in the darkness on +the moor moved the will-o’-the-wisp, and ten yards along the gutter +crept my friend, like a great gaunt cat. Unknown to me he must have +prospected the route by daylight, for now I saw his design. The ledge +terminated only where it met the ancient wall of the tower, and it +was possible for an agile climber to step from it to the edge of the +unglazed window some four feet below, and to scramble from that point +to the stone fence and thence on to the path by which we had come from +Saul. + +This difficult operation Nayland Smith successfully performed, and, to +my unbounded amazement, went racing into the darkness toward the dancing +light, headlong, like a madman! The night swallowed him up, and between +my wonder and my fear my hands trembled so violently that I could scarce +support myself where I rested, with my full weight upon the sill. + +I seemed now to be moving through the fevered phases of a nightmare. +Around and below me Cragmire Tower was profoundly silent, but a faint +odor of cookery was now perceptible. Outside, from the night, came +a faint whispering as of the distant sea, but no moon and no stars +relieved the impenetrable blackness. Only out over the moor the +mysterious light still danced and moved. + +One--two--three--four--five minutes passed. The light vanished and +did not appear again. Five more age-long minutes elapsed in absolute +silence, whilst I peered into the darkness of the night and listened, +every nerve in my body tense, for the return of Nayland Smith. Yet two +more minutes, which embraced an agony of suspense, passed in the same +fashion; then a shadowy form grew, phantomesque, out of the gloom; a +moment more, and I distinctly heard the heavy breathing of a man nearly +spent, and saw my friend scrambling up toward the black embrasure in the +tower. His voice came huskily, pantingly: + +“Creep along and lend me a hand, Petrie! I am nearly winded.” + +I crept through the window, steadied my quivering nerves by an effort +of the will, and reached the end of the ledge in time to take Smith’s +extended hand and to draw him up beside me against the wall of the +tower. He was shaking with his exertions, and must have fallen, I think, +without my assistance. Inside the room again: + +“Quick! light the candles!” he breathed hoarsely. + +“Did any one come?” + +“No one--nothing.” + +Having expended several matches in vain, for my fingers twitched +nervously, I ultimately succeeded in relighting the candles. + +“Get along to your room!” directed Smith. “Your apprehensions are +unfounded at the moment, but you may as well leave both doors wide +open!” + +I looked into his face--it was very drawn and grim, and his brow was wet +with perspiration, but his eyes had the fighting glint, and I knew that +we were upon the eve of strange happenings. + + + +CHAPTER XXIII. A CRY ON THE MOOR + +Of the events intervening between this moment and that when death called +to us out of the night, I have the haziest recollections. An excellent +dinner was served in the bleak and gloomy dining-room by the mulatto, +and the crippled author was carried to the head of the table by this +same Herculean attendant, as lightly as though he had but the weight of +a child. + +Van Roon talked continuously, revealing a deep knowledge of all sorts of +obscure matters; and in the brief intervals, Nayland Smith talked also, +with almost feverish rapidity. Plans for the future were discussed. I +can recall no one of them. + +I could not stifle my queer sentiments in regard to the mulatto, and +every time I found him behind my chair I was hard put to repress +a shudder. In this fashion the strange evening passed; and to the +accompaniment of distant, muttering thunder, we two guests retired +to our chambers in Cragmire Tower. Smith had contrived to give me my +instructions in a whisper, and five minutes after entering my own room, +I had snuffed the candles, slipped a wedge, which he had given me, under +the door, crept out through the window onto the guttered ledge, and +joined Smith in his room. He, too, had extinguished his candles, and the +place was in darkness. As I climbed in, he grasped my wrist to silence +me, and turned me forcibly toward the window. + +“Listen!” he said. + +I turned and looked out upon a prospect which had been a fit setting for +the witch scene in Macbeth. Thunder clouds hung low over the moor, but +through them ran a sort of chasm, or rift, allowing a bar of lurid light +to stretch across the drear, from east to west--a sort of lane walled by +darkness. There came a remote murmuring, as of a troubled sea--a hushed +and distant chorus; and sometimes in upon it broke the drums of heaven. +In the west lightning flickered, though but faintly, intermittently. + +Then came the call. + +Out of the blackness of the moor it came, wild and distant--“Help! +help!” + +“Smith!” I whispered--“what is it? What...” + +“Mr. Smith!” came the agonized cry... “Nayland Smith, help! for God’s +sake....” + +“Quick, Smith!” I cried, “quick, man! It’s Van Roon--he’s been dragged +out... they are murdering him...” + +Nayland Smith held me in a vise-like grip, silent, unmoved! + +Louder and more agonized came the cry for aid, and I became more than +ever certain that it was poor Van Roon who uttered it. + +“Mr. Smith! Dr. Petrie! for God’s sake come... or... it will be ... +too... late...” + +“Smith!” I said, turning furiously upon my friend, “if you are going to +remain here whilst murder is done, I am not!” + +My blood boiled now with hot resentment. It was incredible, inhuman, +that we should remain there inert whilst a fellow man, and our host to +boot, was being done to death out there in the darkness. I exerted all +my strength to break away; but although my efforts told upon him, as his +loud breathing revealed, Nayland Smith clung to me tenaciously. Had my +hands been free, in my fury, I could have struck him, for the pitiable +cries, growing fainter, now, told their own tale. Then Smith spoke +shortly and angrily--breathing hard between the words. + +“Be quiet, you fool!” he snapped; “it’s little less than an insult, +Petrie, to think me capable of refusing help where help is needed!” + +Like a cold douche his words acted; in that instant I knew myself a +fool. + +“You remember the Call of Siva?” he said, thrusting me away irritably, +“--two years ago, and what it meant to those who obeyed it?” + +“You might have told me...” + +“Told you! You would have been through the window before I had uttered +two words!” + +I realized the truth of his assertion, and the justness of his anger. + +“Forgive me, old man,” I said, very crestfallen, “but my impulse was a +natural one, you’ll admit. You must remember that I have been trained +never to refuse aid when aid is asked.” + +“Shut up, Petrie!” he growled; “forget it.” + +The cries had ceased now, entirely, and a peal of thunder, louder than +any yet, echoed over distant Sedgemoor. The chasm of light splitting the +heavens closed in, leaving the night wholly black. + +“Don’t talk!” rapped Smith; “act! You wedged your door?” + +“Yes.” + +“Good. Get into that cupboard, have your Browning ready, and keep the +door very slightly ajar.” + +He was in that mood of repressed fever which I knew and which always +communicated itself to me. I spoke no further word, but stepped into +the wardrobe indicated and drew the door nearly shut. The recess just +accommodated me, and through the aperture I could see the bed, vaguely, +the open window, and part of the opposite wall. I saw Smith cross the +floor, as a mighty clap of thunder boomed over the house. + +A gleam of lightning flickered through the gloom. + +I saw the bed for a moment, distinctly, and it appeared to me that Smith +lay therein, with the sheets pulled up over his head. The light was +gone, and I could hear big drops of rain pattering upon the leaden +gutter below the open window. + +My mood was strange, detached, and characterized by vagueness. That Van +Roon lay dead upon the moor I was convinced; and--although I recognized +that it must be a sufficient one--I could not even dimly divine the +reason why we had refrained from lending him aid. To have failed to save +him, knowing his peril, would have been bad enough; to have refused, I +thought was shameful. Better to have shared his fate--yet... + +The downpour was increasing, and beating now a regular tattoo upon the +gutterway. Then, splitting the oblong of greater blackness which marked +the casement, quivered dazzlingly another flash of lightning in which +I saw the bed again, with that impression of Smith curled up in it. The +blinding light died out; came the crash of thunder, harsh and fearsome, +more imminently above the tower than ever. The building seemed to shake. + +Coming as they did, horror and the wrath of heaven together, suddenly, +crashingly, black and angry after the fairness of the day, these +happenings and their setting must have terrorized the stoutest heart; +but somehow I seemed detached, as I have said, and set apart from the +whirl of events; a spectator. Even when a vague yellow light crept +across the room from the direction of the door, and flickered unsteadily +on the bed, I remained unmoved to a certain degree, although passively +alive to the significance of the incident. I realized that the ultimate +issue was at hand, but either because I was emotionally exhausted, or +from some other cause, the pending climax failed to disturb me. + +Going on tiptoe, in stockinged feet, across my field of vision, passed +Kegan Van Roon! He was in his shirt-sleeves and held a lighted candle in +one hand whilst with the other he shaded it against the draught from +the window. He was a cripple no longer, and the smoked glasses were +discarded; most of the light, at the moment when first I saw him, shone +upon his thin, olive face, and at sight of his eyes much of the mystery +of Cragmire Tower was resolved. For they were oblique, very slightly, +but nevertheless unmistakably oblique. Though highly educated, and +possibly an American citizen, Van Roon was a Chinaman! + +Upon the picture of his face as I saw it then, I do not care to +dwell. It lacked the unique horror of Dr. Fu-Manchu’s unforgettable +countenance, but possessed a sort of animal malignancy which the +latter lacked... He approached within three or four feet of the bed, +peering--peering. Then, with a timidity which spoke well for Nayland +Smith’s reputation, paused and beckoned to some one who evidently stood +in the doorway behind him. As he did so I noted that the legs of his +trousers were caked with greenish brown mud nearly up to the knees. + +The huge mulatto, silent-footed, crossed to the bed in three strides. +He was stripped to the waist, and, excepting some few professional +athletes, I had never seen a torso to compare with that which, brown and +glistening, now bent over Nayland Smith. The muscular development was +simply enormous; the man had a neck like a column, and the thews around +his back and shoulders were like ivy tentacles wreathing some gnarled +oak. + +Whilst Van Roon, his evil gaze upon the bed, held the candle aloft, +the mulatto, with a curious preparatory writhing movement of the mighty +shoulders, lowered his outstretched fingers to the disordered bed +linen... + +I pushed open the cupboard door and thrust out the Browning. As I did +so a dramatic thing happened. A tall, gaunt figure shot suddenly upright +from beyond the bed. It was Nayland Smith! + +Upraised in his hand he held a heavy walking cane. I knew the handle to +be leaded, and I could judge of the force with which he wielded it by +the fact that it cut the air with a keen swishing sound. It descended +upon the back of the mulatto’s skull with a sickening thud, and the +great brown body dropped inert upon the padded bed--in which not Smith, +but his grip, reposed. There was no word, no cry. Then: + +“Shoot, Petrie! Shoot the fiend! Shoot...” + +Van Roon, dropping the candle, in the falling gleam of which I saw the +whites of the oblique eyes turned and leaped from the room with the +agility of a wild cat. The ensuing darkness was split by a streak of +lightning... and there was Nayland Smith scrambling around the foot of +the bed and making for the door in hot pursuit. + +We gained it almost together. Smith had dropped the cane, and now +held his pistol in his hand. Together we fired into the chasm of the +corridor, and in the flash, saw Van Roon hurling himself down the +stairs. He went silently in his stockinged feet, and our own clatter +was drowned by the awful booming of the thunder which now burst over us +again. + +Crack!--crack!--crack! Three times our pistols spat venomously after +the flying figure... then we had crossed the hall below and were in +the wilderness of the night with the rain descending upon us in sheets. +Vaguely I saw the white shirt-sleeves of the fugitive near the corner +of the stone fence. A moment he hesitated, then darted away inland, not +toward Saul, but toward the moor and the cup of the inland bay. + +“Steady, Petrie! steady!” cried Nayland Smith. He ran, panting, beside +me. “It is the path to the mire.” He breathed sibilantly between every +few words. “It was out there... that he hoped to lure us... with the cry +for help.” + +A great blaze of lightning illuminated the landscape as far as the eye +could see. Ahead of us a flying shape, hair lank and glistening in the +downpour, followed a faint path skirting that green tongue of morass +which we had noted from the upland. It was Kegan Van Roon. He glanced +over his shoulder, showing a yellow, terror-stricken face. We were +gaining upon him. Darkness fell, and the thunder cracked and boomed as +though the very moor were splitting about us. + +“Another fifty yards, Petrie,” breathed Nayland Smith, “and after that +it’s unchartered ground.” + +On we went through the rain and the darkness; then: + +“Slow up! slow up!” cried Smith. “It feels soft!” + +Indeed, already I had made one false step--and the hungry mire had +fastened upon my foot, almost tripping me. + +“Lost the path!” + +We stopped dead. The falling rain walled us in. I dared not move, for I +knew that the mire, the devouring mire, stretched, eager, close about +my feet. We were both waiting for the next flash of lightning, I think, +but, before it came, out of the darkness ahead of us rose a cry that +sometimes rings in my ears to this hour. Yet it was no more than a +repetition of that which had called to us, deathfully, awhile before. + +“Help! help! for God’s sake help! Quick! I am sinking...” + +Nayland Smith grasped my arm furiously. + +“We dare not move, Petrie--we dare not move!” he breathed. “It’s God’s +justice--visible for once.” + +Then came the lightning; and--ignoring a splitting crash behind us--we +both looked ahead, over the mire. + +Just on the edge of the venomous green path, not thirty yards away, I +saw the head and shoulders and upstretched, appealing arms of Van Roon. +Even as the lightning flickered and we saw him, he was gone; with one +last, long, drawn-out cry, horribly like the mournful wail of a sea +gull, he was gone! + +That eerie light died, and in the instant before the sound of the +thunder came shatteringly, we turned about... in time to see Cragmire +Tower, a blacker silhouette against the night, topple and fall! A +red glow began to be perceptible above the building. The thunder came +booming through the caverns of space. Nayland Smith lowered his wet face +close to mine and shouted in my ear: + +“Kegan Van Roon never returned from China. It was a trap. Those were two +creatures of Dr. Fu-Manchu...” + +The thunder died away, hollowly, echoing over the distant sea... + +“That light on the moor to-night?” + +“You have not learned the Morse Code, Petrie. It was a signal, and it +read:--S M I T H... SOS.” + +“Well?” + +“I took the chance, as you know. And it was Karamaneh! She knew of the +plot to bury us in the mire. She had followed from London, but could do +nothing until dusk. God forgive me if I’ve misjudged her--for we owe her +our lives to-night.” + +Flames were bursting up from the building beside the ruin of the ancient +tower which had faced the storms of countless ages only to succumb at +last. The lightning literally had cloven it in twain. + +“The mulatto?...” + +Again the lightning flashed, and we saw the path and began to retrace +our steps. Nayland Smith turned to me; his face was very grim in that +unearthly light, and his eyes shone like steel. + +“I killed him, Petrie... as I meant to do.” + +From out over Sedgemoor it came, cracking and rolling and booming toward +us, swelling in volume to a stupendous climax, that awful laughter of +Jove the destroyer of Cragmire Tower. + + + +CHAPTER XXIV. STORY OF THE GABLES + +In looking over my notes dealing with the second phase of Dr. +Fu-Manchu’s activities in England, I find that one of the worst hours +of my life was associated with the singular and seemingly inconsequent +adventure of the fiery hand. I shall deal with it in this place, begging +you to bear with me if I seem to digress. + +Inspector Weymouth called one morning, shortly after the Van Roon +episode, and entered upon a surprising account of a visit to a house at +Hampstead which enjoyed the sinister reputation of being uninhabitable. + +“But in what way does the case enter into your province?” inquired +Nayland Smith, idly tapping out his pipe on a bar of the grate. + +We had not long finished breakfast, but from an early hour Smith had +been at his eternal smoking, which only the advent of the meal had +interrupted. + +“Well,” replied the inspector, who occupied a big armchair near the +window, “I was sent to look into it, I suppose, because I had nothing +better to do at the moment.” + +“Ah!” jerked Smith, glancing over his shoulder. + +The ejaculation had a veiled significance; for our quest of Dr. +Fu-Manchu had come to an abrupt termination by reason of the fact that +all trace of that malignant genius, and of the group surrounding him, +had vanished with the destruction of Cragmire Tower. + +“The house is called the Gables,” continued the Scotland Yard man, “and +I knew I was on a wild goose chase from the first--” + +“Why?” snapped Smith. + +“Because I was there before, six months ago or so--just before your +present return to England--and I knew what to expect.” + +Smith looked up with some faint dawning of interest perceptible in his +manner. + +“I was unaware,” he said with a slight smile, “that the cleaning-up +of haunted houses came within the jurisdiction of Scotland Yard. I am +learning something.” + +“In the ordinary way,” replied the big man good-humoredly, “it doesn’t. +But a sudden death always excites suspicion, and--” + +“A sudden death?” I said, glancing up; “you didn’t explain that the +ghost had killed any one!” + +“I’m afraid I’m a poor hand at yarn-spinning, Doctor,” said Weymouth, +turning his blue, twinkling eyes in my direction. “Two people have died +at the Gables within the last six months.” + +“You begin to interest me,” declared Smith, and there came something of +the old, eager look into his gaunt face, as, having lighted his pipe, he +tossed the match-end into the hearth. + +“I had hoped for some little excitement, myself,” confessed the +inspector. “This dead-end, with not a ghost of a clue to the whereabouts +of the yellow fiend, has been getting on my nerves--” + +Nayland Smith grunted sympathetically. + +“Although Dr. Fu-Manchu has been in England for some months, now,” + continued Weymouth, “I have never set eyes upon him; the house we raided +in Museum Street proved to be empty; in a word, I am wasting my time. +So that I volunteered to run up to Hampstead and look into the matter +of the Gables, principally as a distraction. It’s a queer business, but +more in the Psychical Research Society’s line than mine, I’m afraid. +Still, if there were no Dr. Fu-Manchu it might be of interest to +you--and to you, Dr. Petrie, because it illustrates the fact, that, +given the right sort of subject, death can be brought about without any +elaborate mechanism--such as our Chinese friends employ.” + +“You interest me more and more,” declared Smith, stretching himself in +the long, white cane rest-chair. + +“Two men, both fairly sound, except that the first one had an asthmatic +heart, have died at the Gables without any one laying a little finger +upon them. Oh! there was no jugglery! They weren’t poisoned, or bitten +by venomous insects, or suffocated, or anything like that. They just +died of fear--stark fear.” + +With my elbows resting upon the table cover, and my chin in my hands, I +was listening attentively, now, and Nayland Smith, a big cushion behind +his head, was watching the speaker with a keen and speculative look in +those steely eyes of his. + +“You imply that Dr. Fu-Manchu has something to learn from the Gables?” + he jerked. + +Weymouth nodded stolidly. + +“I can’t work up anything like amazement in these days,” continued the +latter; “every other case seems stale and hackneyed alongside the case. +But I must confess that when the Gables came on the books of the Yard +the second time, I began to wonder. I thought there might be some +tangible clue, some link connecting the two victims; perhaps some +evidence of robbery or of revenge--of some sort of motive. In short, I +hoped to find evidence of human agency at work, but, as before, I was +disappointed.” + +“It’s a legitimate case of a haunted house, then?” said Smith. + +“Yes; we find them occasionally, these uninhabitable places, where +there is something, something malignant and harmful to human life, but +something that you cannot arrest, that you cannot hope to bring into +court.” + +“Ah,” replied Smith slowly; “I suppose you are right. There are historic +instances, of course: Glamys Castle and Spedlins Tower in Scotland, +Peel Castle, Isle of Man, with its Maudhe Dhug, the gray lady of Rainham +Hall, the headless horses of Caistor, the Wesley ghost of Epworth +Rectory, and others. But I have never come in personal contact with such +a case, and if I did I should feel very humiliated to have to +confess that there was any agency which could produce a physical +result--death--but which was immune from physical retaliation.” + +Weymouth nodded his head again. + +“I might feel a bit sour about it, too,” he replied, “if it were not +that I haven’t much pride left in these days, considering the show of +physical retaliation I have made against Dr. Fu-Manchu.” + +“A home thrust, Weymouth!” snapped Nayland Smith, with one of those +rare, boyish laughs of his. “We’re children to that Chinese doctor, +Inspector, to that weird product of a weird people who are as old in +evil as the pyramids are old in mystery. But about the Gables?” + +“Well, it’s an uncanny place. You mentioned Glamys Castle a moment +ago, and it’s possible to understand an old stronghold like that being +haunted, but the Gables was only built about 1870; it’s quite a modern +house. It was built for a wealthy Quaker family, and they occupied it, +uninterruptedly and apparently without anything unusual occurring, for +over forty years. Then it was sold to a Mr. Maddison--and Mr. Maddison +died there six months ago.” + +“Maddison?” said Smith sharply, staring across at Weymouth. “What was +he? Where did he come from?” + +“He was a retired tea-planter from Colombo,” replied the inspector. + +“Colombo?” + +“There was a link with the East, certainly, if that’s what you are +thinking; and it was this fact which interested me at the time, and +which led me to waste precious days and nights on the case. But there +was no mortal connection between this liverish individual and the +schemes of Dr. Fu-Manchu. I’m certain of that.” + +“And how did he die?” I asked, interestedly. + +“He just died in his chair one evening, in the room which he used as a +library. It was his custom to sit there every night, when there were no +visitors, reading, until twelve o’clock--or later. He was a bachelor, +and his household consisted of a cook, a housemaid, and a man who had +been with him for thirty years, I believe. At the time of Mr. Maddison’s +death, his household had recently been deprived of two of its members. +The cook and housemaid both resigned one morning, giving as their reason +the fact that the place was haunted.” + +“In what way?” + +“I interviewed the precious pair at the time, and they told me absurd +and various tales about dark figures wandering along the corridors and +bending over them in bed at night, whispering; but their chief trouble +was a continuous ringing of bells about the house.” + +“Bells?” + +“They said that it became unbearable. Night and day there were bells +ringing all over the house. At any rate, they went, and for three or +four days the Gables was occupied only by Mr. Maddison and his man, +whose name was Stevens. I interviewed the latter also, and he was an +altogether more reliable witness; a decent, steady sort of man whose +story impressed me very much at the time.” + +“Did he confirm the ringing?” + +“He swore to it--a sort of jangle, sometimes up in the air, near the +ceilings, and sometimes under the floor, like the shaking of silver +bells.” + +Nayland Smith stood up abruptly and began to pace the room, leaving +great trails of blue-gray smoke behind him. + +“Your story is sufficiently interesting, Inspector,” he declared, +“even to divert my mind from the eternal contemplation of the Fu-Manchu +problem. This would appear to be distinctly a case of an ‘astral bell’ +such as we sometimes hear of in India.” + +“It was Stevens,” continued Weymouth, “who found Mr. Maddison. He +(Stevens) had been out on business connected with the household +arrangements, and at about eleven o’clock he returned, letting himself +in with a key. There was a light in the library, and getting no response +to his knocking, Stevens entered. He found his master sitting bolt +upright in a chair, clutching the arms with rigid fingers and staring +straight before him with a look of such frightful horror on his face, +that Stevens positively ran from the room and out of the house. Mr. +Maddison was stone dead. When a doctor, who lives at no great distance +away, came and examined him, he could find no trace of violence +whatever; he had apparently died of fright, to judge from the expression +on his face.” + +“Anything else?” + +“Only this: I learnt, indirectly, that the last member of the Quaker +family to occupy the house had apparently witnessed the apparition, +which had led to his vacating the place. I got the story from the wife +of a man who had been employed as gardener there at that time. +The apparition--which he witnessed in the hallway, if I remember +rightly--took the form of a sort of luminous hand clutching a long, +curved knife.” + +“Oh, Heavens!” cried Smith, and laughed shortly; “that’s quite in +order!” + +“This gentleman told no one of the occurrence until after he had left +the house, no doubt in order that the place should not acquire an evil +reputation. Most of the original furniture remained, and Mr. Maddison +took the house furnished. I don’t think there can be any doubt that what +killed him was fear at seeing a repetition--” + +“Of the fiery hand?” concluded Smith. + +“Quite so. Well, I examined the Gables pretty closely, and, with another +Scotland Yard man, spent a night in the empty house. We saw nothing; but +once, very faintly, we heard the ringing of bells.” + +Smith spun around upon him rapidly. + +“You can swear to that?” he snapped. + +“I can swear to it,” declared Weymouth stolidly. “It seemed to be over +our heads. We were sitting in the dining-room. Then it was gone, and we +heard nothing more whatever of an unusual nature. Following the death of +Mr. Maddison, the Gables remained empty until a while ago, when a French +gentleman, name Lejay, leased it--” + +“Furnished?” + +“Yes; nothing was removed--” + +“Who kept the place in order?” + +“A married couple living in the neighborhood undertook to do so. The +man attended to the lawn and so forth, and the woman came once a week, I +believe, to clean up the house.” + +“And Lejay?” + +“He came in only last week, having leased the house for six months. His +family were to have joined him in a day or two, and he, with the aid +of the pair I have just mentioned, and assisted by a French servant he +brought over with him, was putting the place in order. At about twelve +o’clock on Friday night this servant ran into a neighboring house +screaming ‘the fiery hand!’ and when at last a constable arrived and a +frightened group went up the avenue of the Gables, they found M. Lejay, +dead in the avenue, near the steps just outside the hall door! He had +the same face of horror...” + +“What a tale for the press!” snapped Smith. + +“The owner has managed to keep it quiet so far, but this time I think it +will leak into the press--yes.” + +There was a short silence; then: + +“And you have been down to the Gables again?” + +“I was there on Saturday, but there’s not a scrap of evidence. The man +undoubtedly died of fright in the same way as Maddison. The place ought +to be pulled down; it’s unholy.” + +“Unholy is the word,” I said. “I never heard anything like it. This M. +Lejay had no enemies?--there could be no possible motive?” + +“None whatever. He was a business man from Marseilles, and his affairs +necessitated his remaining in or near London for some considerable time; +therefore, he decided to make his headquarters here, temporarily, and +leased the Gables with that intention.” + +Nayland Smith was pacing the floor with increasing rapidity; he was +tugging at the lobe of his left ear and his pipe had long since gone +out. + + + +CHAPTER XXV. THE BELLS + +I started to my feet as a tall, bearded man swung open the door and +hurled himself impetuously into the room. He wore a silk hat, which +fitted him very ill, and a black frock coat which did not fit him at +all. + +“It’s all right, Petrie!” cried the apparition; “I’ve leased the +Gables!” + +It was Nayland Smith! I stared at him in amazement + +“The first time I have employed a disguise,” continued my friend +rapidly, “since the memorable episode of the false pigtail.” He threw +a small brown leather grip upon the floor. “In case you should care +to visit the house, Petrie, I have brought these things. My tenancy +commences to-night!” + +Two days had elapsed, and I had entirely forgotten the strange story of +the Gables which Inspector Weymouth had related to us; evidently it was +otherwise with my friend, and utterly at a loss for an explanation of +his singular behavior, I stooped mechanically and opened the grip. +It contained an odd assortment of garments, and amongst other things +several gray wigs and a pair of gold-rimmed spectacles. + +Kneeling there with this strange litter about me, I looked up amazedly. +Nayland Smith, with the unsuitable silk hat set right upon the back of +his head, was pacing the room excitedly, his fuming pipe protruding from +the tangle of factitious beard. + +“You see, Petrie,” he began again, rapidly, “I did not entirely trust +the agent. I’ve leased the house in the name of Professor Maxton...” + +“But, Smith,” I cried, “what possible reason can there be for disguise?” + +“There’s every reason,” he snapped. + +“Why should you interest yourself in the Gables?” + +“Does no explanation occur to you?” + +“None whatever; to me the whole thing smacks of stark lunacy.” + +“Then you won’t come?” + +“I’ve never stuck at anything, Smith,” I replied, “however undignified, +when it has seemed that my presence could be of the slightest use.” + +As I rose to my feet, Smith stepped in front of me, and the steely gray +eyes shone out strangely from the altered face. He clapped his hands +upon my shoulders. + +“If I assure you that your presence is necessary to my safety,” he +said--“that if you fail me I must seek another companion--will you +come?” + +Intuitively, I knew that he was keeping something back, and I was +conscious of some resentment, but nevertheless my reply was a foregone +conclusion, and--with the borrowed appearance of an extremely untidy +old man--I crept guiltily out of my house that evening and into the cab +which Smith had waiting. + +The Gables was a roomy and rambling place lying back a considerable +distance from the road. A semicircular drive gave access to the door, +and so densely wooded was the ground, that for the most part the drive +was practically a tunnel--a verdant tunnel. A high brick wall concealed +the building from the point of view of any one on the roadway, but +either horn of the crescent drive terminated at a heavy, wrought-iron +gateway. + +Smith discharged the cab at the corner of the narrow and winding road +upon which the Gables fronted. It was walled in on both sides; on +the left the wall being broken by tradesmen’s entrances to the +houses fronting upon another street, and on the right following, +uninterruptedly, the grounds of the Gables. As we came to the gate: + +“Nothing now,” said Smith, pointing into the darkness of the road before +us, “except a couple of studios, until one comes to the Heath.” + +He inserted the key in the lock of the gate and swung it creakingly +open. I looked into the black arch of the avenue, thought of the haunted +residence that lay hidden somewhere beyond, of those who had died in +it--especially of the one who had died there under the trees--and found +myself out of love with the business of the night. + +“Come on!” said Nayland Smith briskly, holding the gate open; “there +should be a fire in the library and refreshments, if the charwoman has +followed instructions.” + +I heard the great gate clang to behind us. Even had there been any moon +(and there was none) I doubted if more than a patch or two of light +could have penetrated there. The darkness was extraordinary. Nothing +broke it, and I think Smith must have found his way by the aid of some +sixth sense. At any rate, I saw nothing of the house until I stood some +five paces from the steps leading up to the porch. A light was burning +in the hallway, but dimly and inhospitably; of the facade of the +building I could perceive little. + +When we entered the hall and the door was closed behind us, I began +wondering anew what purpose my friend hoped to serve by a vigil in this +haunted place. There was a light in the library, the door of which was +ajar, and on the large table were decanters, a siphon, and some biscuits +and sandwiches. A large grip stood upon the floor, also. For some reason +which was a mystery to me, Smith had decided that we must assume false +names whilst under the roof of the Gables; and: + +“Now, Pearce,” he said, “a whisky-and-soda before we look around?” + +The proposal was welcome enough, for I felt strangely dispirited, and, +to tell the truth, in my strange disguise, not a little ridiculous. + +All my nerves, no doubt, were highly strung, and my sense of hearing +unusually acute, for I went in momentary expectation of some uncanny +happening. I had not long to wait. As I raised the glass to my lips and +glanced across the table at my friend, I heard the first faint sound +heralding the coming of the bells. + +It did not seem to proceed from anywhere within the library, but from +some distant room, far away overhead. A musical sound it was, but +breaking in upon the silence of that ill-omened house, its music was the +music of terror. In a faint and very sweet cascade it rippled; a ringing +as of tiny silver bells. + +I set down my glass upon the table, and rising slowly from the chair in +which I had been seated, stared fixedly at my companion, who was staring +with equal fixity at me. I could see that I had not been deluded; +Nayland Smith had heard the ringing, too. + +“The ghosts waste no time!” he said softly. “This is not new to me; I +spent an hour here last night and heard the same sound...” + +I glanced hastily around the room. It was furnished as a library, and +contained a considerable collection of works, principally novels. I was +unable to judge of the outlook, for the two lofty windows were draped +with heavy purple curtains which were drawn close. A silk shaded lamp +swung from the center of the ceiling, and immediately over the table by +which I stood. There was much shadow about the room; and now I glanced +apprehensively about me, but especially toward the open door. + +In that breathless suspense of listening we stood awhile; then: + +“There it is again!” whispered Smith, tensely. + +The ringing of bells was repeated, and seemingly much nearer to us; in +fact it appeared to come from somewhere above, up near the ceiling of +the room in which we stood. Simultaneously, we looked up, then Smith +laughed, shortly. + +“Instinctive, I suppose,” he snapped; “but what do we expect to see in +the air?” + +The musical sound now grew in volume; the first tiny peal seemed to be +reinforced by others and by others again, until the air around about us +was filled with the pealings of these invisible bell-ringers. + +Although, as I have said, the sound was rather musical than horrible, it +was, on the other hand, so utterly unaccountable as to touch the +supreme heights of the uncanny. I could not doubt that our presence had +attracted these unseen ringers to the room in which we stood, and I knew +quite well that I was growing pale. This was the room in which at least +one unhappy occupant of the Gables had died of fear. I recognized the +fact that if this mere overture were going to affect my nerves to such +an extent, I could not hope to survive the ordeal of the night; a great +effort was called for. I emptied my glass at a gulp, and stared across +the table at Nayland Smith with a sort of defiance. He was standing +very upright and motionless, but his eyes were turning right and left, +searching every visible corner of the big room. + +“Good!” he said in a very low voice. “The terrorizing power of the +Unknown is boundless, but we must not get in the grip of panic, or we +could not hope to remain in this house ten minutes.” + +I nodded without speaking. Then Smith, to my amazement, suddenly began +to speak in a loud voice, a marked contrast to that, almost a whisper, +in which he had spoken formerly. + +“My dear Pearce,” he cried, “do you hear the ringing of bells?” + +Clearly the latter words were spoken for the benefit of the unseen +intelligence controlling these manifestations; and although I regarded +such finesse as somewhat wasted, I followed my friend’s lead and replied +in a voice as loud as his own: + +“Distinctly, Professor!” + +Silence followed my words, a silence in which both stood watchful and +listening. Then, very faintly, I seemed to detect the silvern ringing +receding away through distant rooms. Finally it became inaudible, and +in the stillness of the Gables I could distinctly hear my companion +breathing. For fully ten minutes we two remained thus, each momentarily +expecting a repetition of the ringing, or the coming of some new and +more sinister manifestation. But we heard nothing and saw nothing. + +“Hand me that grip, and don’t stir until I come back!” hissed Smith in +my ear. + +He turned and walked out of the library, his boots creaking very loudly +in that awe-inspiring silence. + +Standing beside the table, I watched the open door for his return, +crushing down a dread that another form than his might suddenly appear +there. + +I could hear him moving from room to room, and presently, as I waited +in hushed, tense watchfulness, he came in, depositing the grip upon the +table. His eyes were gleaming feverishly. + +“The house is haunted, Pearce!” he cried. “But no ghost ever frightened +me! Come, I will show you your room.” + + + +CHAPTER XXVI. THE FIERY HAND + +Smith walked ahead of me upstairs; he had snapped up the light in the +hallway, and now he turned and cried back loudly: + +“I fear we should never get servants to stay here.” + +Again I detected the appeal to a hidden Audience; and there was +something very uncanny in the idea. The house now was deathly still; the +ringing had entirely subsided. In the upper corridor my companion, who +seemed to be well acquainted with the position of the switches, again +turned up all the lights, and in pursuit of the strange comedy which he +saw fit to enact, addressed me continuously in the loud and unnatural +voice which he had adopted as part of his disguise. + +We looked into a number of rooms all well and comfortably furnished, but +although my imagination may have been responsible for the idea, they +all seemed to possess a chilly and repellent atmosphere. I felt that to +essay sleep in any one of them would be the merest farce, that the +place to all intents and purposes was uninhabitable, that something +incalculably evil presided over the house. + +And through it all, so obtuse was I, that no glimmer of the truth +entered my mind. Outside again in the long, brightly lighted corridor, +we stood for a moment as if a mutual anticipation of some new event +pending had come to us. It was curious that sudden pulling up and silent +questioning of one another; because, although we acted thus, no sound +had reached us. A few seconds later our anticipation was realized. From +the direction of the stairs it came--a low wailing in a woman’s voice; +and the sweetness of the tones added to the terror of the sound. I +clutched at Smith’s arm convulsively whilst that uncanny cry rose and +fell--rose and fell--and died away. + +Neither of us moved immediately. My mind was working with feverish +rapidity and seeking to run down a memory which the sound had stirred +into faint quickness. My heart was still leaping wildly when the wailing +began again, rising and falling in regular cadence. At that instant I +identified it. + +During the time Smith and I had spent together in Egypt, two years +before, searching for Karamaneh, I had found myself on one occasion in +the neighborhood of a native cemetery near to Bedrasheen. Now, the +scene which I had witnessed there rose up again vividly before me, and +I seemed to see a little group of black-robed women clustered together +about a native grave; for the wailing which now was dying away again +in the Gables was the same, or almost the same, as the wailing of those +Egyptian mourners. + +The house was very silent again, now. My forehead was damp with +perspiration, and I became more and more convinced that the uncanny +ordeal must prove too much for my nerves. Hitherto, I had accorded +little credence to tales of the supernatural, but face to face with such +manifestations as these, I realized that I would have faced rather a +group of armed dacoits, nay! Dr. Fu-Manchu himself, than have remained +another hour in that ill-omened house. + +My companion must have read as much in my face. But he kept up the +strange, and to me, purposeless comedy, when presently he spoke. + +“I feel it to be incumbent upon me to suggest,” he said, “that we spend +the night at a hotel after all.” + +He walked rapidly downstairs and into the library and began to strap up +the grip. + +“After all,” he said, “there may be a natural explanation of what we’ve +heard; for it is noteworthy that we have actually seen nothing. It might +even be possible to get used to the ringing and the wailing after a +time. Frankly, I am loath to go back on my bargain!” + +Whilst I stared at him in amazement, he stood there indeterminate as it +seemed, Then: + +“Come, Pearce!” he cried loudly, “I can see that you do not share my +views; but for my own part I shall return to-morrow and devote further +attention to the phenomena.” + +Extinguishing the light, he walked out into the hallway, carrying the +grip in his hand. I was not far behind him. We walked toward the door +together, and: + +“Turn the light out, Pearce,” directed Smith; “the switch is at your +elbow. We can see our way to the door well enough, now.” + +In order to carry out these instructions, it became necessary for me to +remain a few paces in the rear of my companion, and I think I have never +experienced such a pang of nameless terror as pierced me at the moment +of extinguishing the light; for Smith had not yet opened the door, and +the utter darkness of the Gables was horrible beyond expression. Surely +darkness is the most potent weapon of the Unknown. I know that at the +moment my hand left the switch, I made for the door as though the hosts +of hell pursued me. I collided violently with Smith. He was evidently +facing toward me in the darkness, for at the moment of our collision, he +grasped my shoulder as in a vise. + +“My God, Petrie! look behind you!” he whispered. + +I was enabled to judge of the extent and reality of his fear by the +fact that the strange subterfuge of addressing me always as Pearce was +forgotten. I turned, in a flash.... + +Never can I forget what I saw. Many strange and terrible memories are +mine, memories stranger and more terrible than those of the average +man; but this thing which now moved slowly down upon us through +the impenetrable gloom of that haunted place, was (if the term be +understood) almost absurdly horrible. It was a medieval legend come to +life in modern London; it was as though some horrible chimera of the +black and ignorant past was become create and potent in the present. + +A luminous hand--a hand in the veins of which fire seemed to run so +that the texture of the skin and the shape of the bones within were +perceptible--in short a hand of glowing, fiery flesh clutching a short +knife or dagger which also glowed with the same hellish, internal +luminance, was advancing upon us where we stood--was not three paces +removed! + +What I did or how I came to do it, I can never recall. In all my years +I have experienced nothing to equal the stark panic which seized upon me +then. I know that I uttered a loud and frenzied cry; I know that I tore +myself like a madman from Smith’s restraining grip... + +“Don’t touch it! Keep away, for your life!” I heard... + +But, dimly I recollect that, finding the thing approaching yet nearer, +I lashed out with my fists--madly, blindly--and struck something +palpable... + +What was the result, I cannot say. At that point my recollections +merge into confusion. Something or some one (Smith, as I afterwards +discovered) was hauling me by main force through the darkness; I fell a +considerable distance onto gravel which lacerated my hands and gashed +my knees. Then, with the cool night air fanning my brow, I was running, +running--my breath coming in hysterical sobs. Beside me fled another +figure.... And my definite recollections commence again at that point. +For this companion of my flight from the Gables threw himself roughly +against me to alter my course. + +“Not that way! not that way!” came pantingly. + +“Not on to the Heath... we must keep to the roads...” + +It was Nayland Smith. That healing realization came to me, bringing such +a gladness as no words of mine can express nor convey. Still we ran on. + +“There’s a policeman’s lantern,” panted my companion. “They’ll attempt +nothing, now!” + + * * * * * + +I gulped down the stiff brandy-and-soda, then glanced across to where +Nayland Smith lay extended in the long, cane chair. + +“Perhaps you will explain,” I said, “for what purpose you submitted +me to that ordeal. If you proposed to correct my skepticism concerning +supernatural manifestations, you have succeeded.” + +“Yes,” said my companion, musingly, “they are devilishly clever; but we +knew that already.” + +I stared at him, fatuously. + +“Have you ever known me to waste my time when there was important work +to do?” he continued. “Do you seriously believe that my ghost-hunting +was undertaken for amusement? Really, Petrie, although you are very fond +of assuring me that I need a holiday, I think the shoe is on the other +foot!” + +From the pocket of his dressing-gown, he took out a piece of silk fringe +which had apparently been torn from a scarf, and rolling it into a ball, +tossed it across to me. + +“Smell!” he snapped. + +I did as he directed--and gave a great start. The silk exhaled a +faint perfume, but its effect upon me was as though some one had cried +aloud:-- + +“Karamaneh!” + +Beyond doubt the silken fragment had belonged to the beautiful servant +of Dr. Fu-Manchu, to the dark-eyed, seductive Karamaneh. Nayland Smith +was watching me keenly. + +“You recognize it--yes?” + +I placed the piece of silk upon the table, slightly shrugging my +shoulders. + +“It was sufficient evidence in itself,” continued my friend, “but I +thought it better to seek confirmation, and the obvious way was to pose +as a new lessee of the Gables...” + +“But, Smith,” I began... + +“Let me explain, Petrie. The history of the Gables seemed to be +susceptible of only one explanation; in short it was fairly evident to +me that the object of the manifestations was to insure the place being +kept empty. This idea suggested another, and with them both in mind, I +set out to make my inquiries, first taking the precaution to disguise my +identity, to which end Weymouth gave me the freedom of Scotland Yard’s +fancy wardrobe. I did not take the agent into my confidence, but posed +as a stranger who had heard that the house was to let furnished and +thought it might suit his purpose. My inquiries were directed to a +particular end, but I failed to achieve it at the time. I had theories, +as I have said, and when, having paid the deposit and secured possession +of the keys, I was enabled to visit the place alone, I was fortunate +enough to obtain evidence to show that my imagination had not misled me. + +“You were very curious the other morning, I recall, respecting my object +in borrowing a large brace and bit. My object, Petrie, was to bore a +series of holes in the wainscoating of various rooms at the Gables--in +inconspicuous positions, of course...” + +“But, my dear Smith!” I cried, “you are merely adding to my +mystification.” + +He stood up and began to pace the room in his restless fashion. + +“I had cross-examined Weymouth closely regarding the phenomenon of +the bell-ringing, and an exhaustive search of the premises led to the +discovery that the house was in such excellent condition that, from +ground-floor to attic, there was not a solitary crevice large enough to +admit of the passage of a mouse.” + +I suppose I must have been staring very foolishly indeed, for Nayland +Smith burst into one of his sudden laughs. + +“A mouse, I said, Petrie!” he cried. “With the brace-and-bit I rectified +that matter. I made the holes I have mentioned, and before each set a +trap baited with a piece of succulent, toasted cheese. Just open that +grip!” + +The light at last was dawning upon my mental darkness, and I pounced +upon the grip, which stood upon a chair near the window, and opened it. +A sickly smell of cooked cheese assailed my nostrils. + +“Mind your fingers!” cried Smith; “some of them are still set, +possibly.” + +Out from the grip I began to take mouse-traps! Two or three of them were +still set but in the case of the greater number the catches had slipped. +Nine I took out and placed upon the table, and all were empty. In +the tenth there crouched, panting, its soft furry body dank with +perspiration, a little white mouse! + +“Only one capture!” cried my companion, “showing how well-fed the +creatures were. Examine his tail!” + +But already I had perceived that to which Smith would draw my attention, +and the mystery of the “astral bells” was a mystery no longer. Bound to +the little creature’s tail, close to the root, with fine soft wire +such as is used for making up bouquets, were three tiny silver bells. I +looked across at my companion in speechless surprise. + +“Almost childish, is it not?” he said; “yet by means of this simple +device the Gables has been emptied of occupant after occupant. There was +small chance of the trick being detected, for, as I have said, there was +absolutely no aperture from roof to basement by means of which one of +them could have escaped into the building.” + +“Then...” + +“They were admitted into the wall cavities and the rafters, from some +cellar underneath, Petrie, to which, after a brief scamper under the +floors and over the ceilings, they instinctively returned for the +food they were accustomed to receive, and for which, even had it been +possible (which it was not) they had no occasion to forage.” + +I, too, stood up; for excitement was growing within me. I took up the +piece of silk from the table. + +“Where did you find this?” I asked, my eyes upon Smith’s keen face. + +“In a sort of wine cellar, Petrie,” he replied, “under the stair. There +is no cellar proper to the Gables--at least no such cellar appears in +the plans.” + +“But...” + +“But there is one beyond doubt--yes! It must be part of some older +building which occupied the site before the Gables was built. One can +only surmise that it exists, although such a surmise is a fairly safe +one, and the entrance to the subterranean portion of the building is +situated beyond doubt in the wine cellar. Of this we have at least two +evidences:--the finding of the fragment of silk there, and the fact that +in one case at least--as I learned--the light was extinguished in the +library unaccountably. This could only have been done in one way: by +manipulating the main switch, which is also in the wine cellar.” + +“But Smith!” I cried, “do you mean that Fu-Manchu...” + +Nayland Smith turned in his promenade of the floor, and stared into my +eyes. + +“I mean that Dr. Fu-Manchu has had a hiding-place under the Gables for +an indefinite period!” he replied. “I always suspected that a man of his +genius would have a second retreat prepared for him, anticipating the +event of the first being discovered. Oh! I don’t doubt it! The place +probably is extensive, and I am almost certain--though the point has +to be confirmed--that there is another entrance from the studio further +along the road. We know, now, why our recent searchings in the East End +have proved futile; why the house in Museum Street was deserted; he has +been lying low in this burrow at Hampstead!” + +“But the hand, Smith, the luminous hand...” + +Nayland Smith laughed shortly. + +“Your superstitious fears overcame you to such an extent, Petrie--and I +don’t wonder at it; the sight was a ghastly one--that probably you don’t +remember what occurred when you struck out at that same ghostly hand?” + +“I seemed to hit something.” + +“That was why we ran. But I think our retreat had all the appearance of +a rout, as I intended that it should. Pardon my playing upon your very +natural fears, old man, but you could not have simulated panic half so +naturally! And if they had suspected that the device was discovered, +we might never have quitted the Gables alive. It was touch-and-go for a +moment.” + +“But...” + +“Turn out the light!” snapped my companion. + +Wondering greatly, I did as he desired. I turned out the light... and +in the darkness of my own study I saw a fiery fist being shaken at me +threateningly!... The bones were distinctly visible, and the luminosity +of the flesh was truly ghastly. + +“Turn on the light, again!” cried Smith. + +Deeply mystified, I did so... and my friend tossed a little electric +pocket-lamp on to the writing-table. + +“They used merely a small electric lamp fitted into the handle of a +glass dagger,” he said with a sort of contempt. “It was very effective, +but the luminous hand is a phenomenon producible by any one who +possesses an electric torch.” + +“The Gables--will be watched?” + +“At last, Petrie, I think we have Fu-Manchu--in his own trap!” + + + +CHAPTER XXVII. THE NIGHT OF THE RAID + +“Dash it all, Petrie!” cried Smith, “this is most annoying!” + +The bell was ringing furiously, although midnight was long past. Whom +could my late visitor be? Almost certainly this ringing portended an +urgent case. In other words, I was not fated to take part in what I +anticipated would prove to be the closing scene of the Fu-Manchu drama. + +“Every one is in bed,” I said, ruefully; “and how can I possibly see a +patient--in this costume?” + +Smith and I were both arrayed in rough tweeds, and anticipating the +labors before us, had dispensed with collars and wore soft mufflers. +It was hard to be called upon to face a professional interview dressed +thus, and having a big tweed cap pulled down over my eyes. + +Across the writing-table we confronted one another in dismayed silence, +whilst, below, the bell sent up its ceaseless clangor. + +“It has to be done, Smith,” I said, regretfully. “Almost certainly it +means a journey and probably an absence of some hours.” + +I threw my cap upon the table, turned up my coat to hide the absence +of collar, and started for the door. My last sight of Smith showed him +standing looking after me, tugging at the lobe of his ear and clicking +his teeth together with suppressed irritability. I stumbled down the +dark stairs, along the hall, and opened the front door. Vaguely visible +in the light of a street lamp which stood at no great distance away, +I saw a slender man of medium height confronting me. From the shadowed +face two large and luminous eyes looked out into mine. My visitor, +who, despite the warmth of the evening, wore a heavy greatcoat, was an +Oriental! + +I drew back, apprehensively; then: + +“Ah! Dr. Petrie!” he said in a softly musical voice which made me start +again, “to God be all praise that I have found you!” + +Some emotion, which at present I could not define, was stirring within +me. Where had I seen this graceful Eastern youth before? Where had I +heard that soft voice? + +“Do you wish to see me professionally?” I asked--yet even as I put the +question, I seemed to know it unnecessary. + +“So you know me no more?” said the stranger--and his teeth gleamed in a +slight smile. + +Heavens! I knew now what had struck that vibrant chord within me! The +voice, though infinitely deeper, yet had an unmistakable resemblance +to the dulcet tones of Karamaneh--of Karamaneh whose eyes haunted my +dreams, whose beauty had done much to embitter my years. + +The Oriental youth stepped forward, with outstretched hand. + +“So you know me no more?” he repeated; “but I know you, and give praise +to Allah that I have found you!” + +I stepped back, pressed the electric switch, and turned, with leaping +heart, to look into the face of my visitor. It was a face of the purest +Greek beauty, a face that might have served as a model for Praxiteles; +the skin had a golden pallor, which, with the crisp black hair and +magnetic yet velvety eyes, suggested to my fancy that this was the young +Antinious risen from the Nile, whose wraith now appeared to me out of +the night. I stifled a cry of surprise, not unmingled with gladness. + +It was Aziz--the brother of Karamaneh! + +Never could the entrance of a figure upon the stage of a drama have been +more dramatic than the coming of Aziz upon this night of all nights. +I seized the outstretched hand and drew him forward, then reclosed the +door and stood before him a moment in doubt. + +A vaguely troubled look momentarily crossed the handsome face; with +the Oriental’s unerring instinct, he had detected the reserve of my +greeting. Yet, when I thought of the treachery of Karamaneh, when I +remember how she, whom we had befriended, whom we had rescued from the +house of Fu-Manchu, now had turned like the beautiful viper that she was +to strike at the hand that caressed her; when I thought how to-night we +were set upon raiding the place where the evil Chinese doctor lurked in +hiding, were set upon the arrest of that malignant genius and of all his +creatures, Karamaneh amongst them, is it strange that I hesitated? Yet, +again, when I thought of my last meeting with her, and of how, twice, +she had risked her life to save me... + +So, avoiding the gaze of the lad, I took his arm, and in silence we two +ascended the stairs and entered my study... where Nayland Smith stood +bolt upright beside the table, his steely eyes fixed upon the face of +the new arrival. + +No look of recognition crossed the bronzed features, and Aziz who had +started forward with outstretched hands, fell back a step and looked +pathetically from me to Nayland Smith, and from the grim commissioner +back again to me. The appeal in the velvet eyes was more than I could +tolerate, unmoved. + +“Smith,” I said shortly, “you remember Aziz?” + +Not a muscle visibly moved in Smith’s face, as he snapped back: + +“I remember him perfectly.” + +“He has come, I think, to seek our assistance.” + +“Yes, yes!” cried Aziz laying his hand upon my arm with a gesture +painfully reminiscent of Karamaneh--“I came only to-night to London. Oh, +my gentlemen! I have searched, and searched, and searched, until I +am weary. Often I have wished to die. And then at last I come to +Rangoon...” + +“To Rangoon!” snapped Smith, still with the gray eyes fixed almost +fiercely upon the lad’s face. + +“To Rangoon--yes; and there I heard news at last. I hear that you have +seen her--have seen Karamaneh--that you are back in London.” He was not +entirely at home with his English. “I know then that she must be here, +too. I ask them everywhere, and they answer ‘yes.’ Oh, Smith Pasha!”--he +stepped forward and impulsively seized both Smith’s hands--“You know +where she is--take me to her!” + +Smith’s face was a study in perplexity, now. In the past we had +befriended the young Aziz, and it was hard to look upon him in the light +of an enemy. Yet had we not equally befriended his sister?--and she... + +At last Smith glanced across at me where I stood just within the +doorway. + +“What do you make of it, Petrie?” he said harshly. “Personally I take +it to mean that our plans have leaked out.” He sprang suddenly back from +Aziz and I saw his glance traveling rapidly over the slight figure as if +in quest of concealed arms. “I take it to be a trap!” + +A moment he stood so, regarding him, and despite my well-grounded +distrust of the Oriental character, I could have sworn that the +expression of pained surprise upon the youth’s face was not simulated +but real. Even Smith, I think, began to share my view; for suddenly +he threw himself into the white cane rest-chair, and, still fixedly +regarding Aziz: + +“Perhaps I have wronged you,” he said. “If I have, you shall know the +reason presently. Tell your own story!” + +There was a pathetic humidity in the velvet eyes of Aziz--eyes so like +those others that were ever looking into mine in dreams--as glancing +from Smith to me he began, hands outstretched, characteristically, palms +upward and fingers curling, to tell in broken English the story of his +search for Karamaneh... + +“It was Fu-Manchu, my kind gentlemen--it was the hakim who is really not +a man at all, but an efreet. He found us again less than four days after +you had left us, Smith Pasha!... He found us in Cairo, and to Karamaneh +he made the forgetting of all things--even of me--even of me...” + +Nayland Smith snapped his teeth together sharply; then: + +“What do you mean by that?” he demanded. + +For my own part I understood well enough, remembering how the brilliant +Chinese doctor once had performed such an operation as this upon poor +Inspector Weymouth; how, by means of an injection of some serum prepared +(as Karamaneh afterwards told us) from the venom of a swamp adder or +similar reptile, he had induced amnesia, or complete loss of memory. I +felt every drop of blood recede from my cheeks. + +“Smith!” I began... + +“Let him speak for himself,” interrupted my friend sharply. + +“They tried to take us both,” continued Aziz still speaking in that +soft, melodious manner, but with deep seriousness. “I escaped, I, who +am swift of foot, hoping to bring help.”--He shook his head sadly--“But, +except the All Powerful, who is so powerful as the Hakim Fu-Manchu? I +hid, my gentlemen, and watched and waited, one--two--three weeks. At +last I saw her again, my sister, Karamaneh; but ah! she did not know me, +did not know me, Aziz her brother! She was in an arabeeyeh, and passed +me quickly along the Sharia en-Nahhasin. I ran, and ran, and ran, crying +her name, but although she looked back, she did not know me--she did not +know me! I felt that I was dying, and presently I fell--upon the steps +of the Mosque of Abu.” + +He dropped the expressive hands wearily to his sides and sank his chin +upon his breast. + +“And then?” I said, huskily--for my heart was fluttering like a captive +bird. + +“Alas! from that day to this I see her no more, my gentlemen. I travel, +not only in Egypt, but near and far, and still I see her no more until +in Rangoon I hear that which brings me to England again”--he extended +his palms naively--“and here I am--Smith Pasha.” + +Smith sprang upright again and turned to me. + +“Either I am growing over-credulous,” he said, “or Aziz speaks the +truth. But”--he held up his hand--“you can tell me all that at some +other time, Petrie! We must take no chances. Sergeant Carter is +downstairs with the cab; you might ask him to step up. He and Aziz can +remain here until our return.” + + + +CHAPTER XXVIII. THE SAMURAI’S SWORD + +The muffled drumming of sleepless London seemed very remote from us, +as side by side we crept up the narrow path to the studio. This was a +starry but moonless night, and the little dingy white building with a +solitary tree peeping, in silhouette, above the glazed roof, bore an odd +resemblance to one of those tombs which form a city of the dead so near +to the city of feverish life on the slopes of the Mokattam Hills. This +line of reflection proved unpleasant, and I dismissed it sternly from my +mind. + +The shriek of a train-whistle reached me, a sound which breaks the +stillness of the most silent London night, telling of the ceaseless, +febrile life of the great world-capital whose activity ceases not with +the coming of darkness. Around and about us a very great stillness +reigned, however, and the velvet dusk which, with the star-jeweled sky, +was strongly suggestive of an Eastern night--gave up no sign to show +that it masked the presence of more than twenty men. Some distance away +on our right was the Gables, that sinister and deserted mansion which +we assumed, and with good reason, to be nothing less than the gateway +to the subterranean abode of Dr. Fu-Manchu; before us was the studio, +which, if Nayland Smith’s deductions were accurate, concealed a second +entrance to the same mysterious dwelling. + +As my friend, glancing cautiously all about him, inserted the key in +the lock, an owl hooted dismally almost immediately above our heads. I +caught my breath sharply, for it might be a signal; but, looking upward, +I saw a great black shape float slantingly from the tree beyond the +studio into the coppice on the right which hemmed in the Gables. +Silently the owl winged its uncanny flight into the greater darkness of +the trees, and was gone. Smith opened the door and we stepped into +the studio. Our plans had been well considered, and in accordance with +these, I now moved up beside my friend, who was dimly perceptible to me +in the starlight which found access through the glass roof, and pressed +the catch of my electric pocket-lamp... + +I suppose that by virtue of my self-imposed duty as chronicler of the +deeds of Dr. Fu-Manchu--the greatest and most evil genius whom the +later centuries have produced, the man who dreamt of an universal Yellow +Empire--I should have acquired a certain facility in describing bizarre +happenings. But I confess that it fails me now as I attempt in cold +English to portray my emotions when the white beam from the little +lamp cut through the darkness of the studio, and shone fully upon the +beautiful face of Karamaneh! + +Less than six feet away from me she stood, arrayed in the gauzy dress of +the harem, her fingers and slim white arms laden with barbaric jewelry! +The light wavered in my suddenly nerveless hand, gleaming momentarily +upon bare ankles and golden anklets, upon little red leather shoes. + +I spoke no word, and Smith was as silent as I; both of us, I think, were +speechless rather from amazement than in obedience to the evident wishes +of Fu-Manchu’s slave-girl. Yet I have only to close my eyes at this +moment to see her as she stood, one finger raised to her lips, enjoining +us to silence. She looked ghastly pale in the light of the lamp, but so +lovely that my rebellious heart threatened already, to make a fool of +me. + +So we stood in that untidy studio, with canvases and easels heaped +against the wall and with all sorts of litter about us, a trio strangely +met, and one to have amused the high gods watching through the windows +of the stars. + +“Go back!” came in a whisper from Karamaneh. + +I saw the red lips moving and read a dreadful horror in the widely +opened eyes, in those eyes like pools of mystery to taunt the thirsty +soul. The world of realities was slipping past me; I seemed to be losing +my hold on things actual; I had built up an Eastern palace about myself +and Karamaneh wherein, the world shut out, I might pass the hours in +reading the mystery of those dark eyes. Nayland Smith brought me sharply +to my senses. + +“Steady with the light, Petrie!” he hissed in my ear. “My skepticism has +been shaken, to-night, but I am taking no chances.” + +He moved from my side and forward toward that lovely, unreal figure +which stood immediately before the model’s throne and its background +of plush curtains. Karamaneh started forward to meet him, suppressing a +little cry, whose real anguish could not have been simulated. + +“Go back! go back!” she whispered urgently, and thrust out her hands +against Smith’s breast. “For God’s sake, go back! I have risked my life +to come here to-night. He knows, and is ready!”... + +The words were spoken with passionate intensity, and Nayland Smith +hesitated. To my nostrils was wafted that faint, delightful perfume +which, since one night, two years ago, it had come to disturb my senses, +had taunted me many times as the mirage taunts the parched Sahara +traveler. I took a step forward. + +“Don’t move!” snapped Smith. + +Karamaneh clutched frenziedly at the lapels of his coat. + +“Listen to me!” she said, beseechingly and stamped one little foot upon +the floor--“listen to me! You are a clever man, but you know nothing of +a woman’s heart--nothing--nothing--if seeing me, hearing me, knowing, +as you do know, I risk, you can doubt that I speak the truth. And I tell +you that it is death to go behind those curtains--that he...” + +“That’s what I wanted to know!” snapped Smith. His voice quivered with +excitement. + +Suddenly grasping Karamaneh by the waist, he lifted her and set her +aside; then in three bounds he was on to the model’s throne and had torn +the Plush curtains bodily from their fastenings. + +How it occurred I cannot hope to make dear, for here my recollections +merge into a chaos. I know that Smith seemed to topple forward amid the +purple billows of velvet, and his muffled cry came to me: + +“Petrie! My God, Petrie!”... + +The pale face of Karamaneh looked up into mine and her hands were +clutching me, but the glamour of her personality had lost its hold, +for I knew--heavens, how poignantly it struck home to me!--that Nayland +Smith was gone to his death. What I hoped to achieve, I know not, but +hurling the trembling girl aside, I snatched the Browning pistol from my +coat pocket, and with the ray of the lamp directed upon the purple mound +of velvet, I leaped forward. + +I think I realized that the curtains had masked a collapsible trap, a +sheer pit of blackness, an instant before I was precipitated into it, +but certainly the knowledge came too late. With the sound of a soft, +shuddering cry in my ears, I fell, dropping lamp and pistol, and +clutching at the fallen hangings. But they offered me no support. My +head seemed to be bursting; I could utter only a hoarse groan, as I +fell--fell--fell... + +When my mind began to work again, in returning consciousness, I found it +to be laden with reproach. How often in the past had we blindly hurled +ourselves into just such a trap as this? Should we never learn that +where Fu-Manchu was, impetuosity must prove fatal? On two distinct +occasions in the past we had been made the victims of this device, +yet even although we had had practically conclusive evidence that this +studio was used by Dr. Fu-Manchu, we had relied upon its floor being as +secure as that of any other studio, we had failed to sound every foot of +it ere trusting our weight to its support.... + +“There is such a divine simplicity in the English mind that one may +lay one’s plans with mathematical precision, and rely upon the Nayland +Smiths and Dr. Petries to play their allotted parts. Excepting two +faithful followers, my friends are long since departed. But here, in +these vaults which time has overlooked and which are as secret and as +serviceable to-day as they were two hundred years ago, I wait patiently, +with my trap set, like the spider for the fly!...” + +To the sound of that taunting voice, I opened my eyes. As I did so I +strove to spring upright--only to realize that I was tied fast to a +heavy ebony chair inlaid with ivory, and attached by means of two iron +brackets to the floor. + +“Even children learn from experience,” continued the unforgettable +voice, alternately guttural and sibilant, but always as deliberate as +though the speaker were choosing with care words which should perfectly +clothe his thoughts. “For ‘a burnt child fears the fire,’ says your +English adage. But Mr. Commissioner Nayland Smith, who enjoys the +confidence of the India Office, and who is empowered to control the +movements of the Criminal Investigation Department, learns nothing +from experience. He is less than a child, since he has twice rashly +precipitated himself into a chamber charged with an anesthetic prepared, +by a process of my own, from the lycoperdon or Common Puff-ball.” + +I became fully master of my senses, and I became fully alive to a +stupendous fact. At last it was ended; we were utterly in the power of +Dr. Fu-Manchu; our race was run. + +I sat in a low vaulted room. The roof was of ancient brickwork, but the +walls were draped with exquisite Chinese fabric having a green ground +whereon was a design representing a grotesque procession of white +peacocks. A green carpet covered the floor, and the whole of the +furniture was of the same material as the chair to which I was strapped, +viz:--ebony inlaid with ivory. This furniture was scanty. There was a +heavy table in one corner of the dungeonesque place, on which were a +number of books and papers. Before this table was a high-backed, heavily +carven chair. A smaller table stood upon the right of the only visible +opening, a low door partially draped with bead work curtains, above +which hung a silver lamp. On this smaller table, a stick of incense, in +a silver holder, sent up a pencil of vapor into the air, and the +chamber was loaded with the sickly sweet fumes. A faint haze from the +incense-stick hovered up under the roof. + +In the high-backed chair sat Dr. Fu-Manchu, wearing a green robe upon +which was embroidered a design, the subject of which at first glance +was not perceptible, but which presently I made out to be a huge white +peacock. He wore a little cap perched upon the dome of his amazing +skull, and with one clawish hand resting upon the ebony of the table, he +sat slightly turned toward me, his emotionless face a mask of incredible +evil. In spite of, or because of, the high intellect written upon it, +the face of Dr. Fu-Manchu was more utterly repellent than any I have +ever known, and the green eyes, eyes green as those of a cat in the +darkness, which sometimes burned like witch lamps, and sometimes were +horribly filmed like nothing human or imaginable, might have mirrored +not a soul, but an emanation of hell, incarnate in this gaunt, +high-shouldered body. + +Stretched flat upon the floor lay Nayland Smith, partially stripped, his +arms thrown back over his head and his wrists chained to a stout iron +staple attached to the wall; he was fully conscious and staring intently +at the Chinese doctor. His bare ankles also were manacled, and fixed to +a second chain, which quivered tautly across the green carpet and passed +out through the doorway, being attached to something beyond the curtain, +and invisible to me from where I sat. + +Fu-Manchu was now silent. I could hear Smith’s heavy breathing and hear +my watch ticking in my pocket. I suddenly realized that although my +body was lashed to the ebony chair, my hands and arms were free. Next, +looking dazedly about me, my attention was drawn to a heavy sword which +stood hilt upward against the wall within reach of my hand. It was a +magnificent piece, of Japanese workmanship; a long, curved Damascened +blade having a double-handed hilt of steel, inlaid with gold, and +resembling fine Kuft work. A host of possibilities swept through my +mind. Then I perceived that the sword was attached to the wall by a thin +steel chain some five feet in length. + +“Even if you had the dexterity of a Mexican knife-thrower,” came the +guttural voice of Fu-Manchu, “you would be unable to reach me, dear Dr. +Petrie.” + +The Chinaman had read my thoughts. + +Smith turned his eyes upon me momentarily, only to look away again in +the direction of Fu-Manchu. My friend’s face was slightly pale beneath +the tan, and his jaw muscles stood out with unusual prominence. By this +fact alone did he reveal his knowledge that he lay at the mercy of +this enemy of the white race, of this inhuman being who himself knew +no mercy, of this man whose very genius was inspired by the cool, +calculated cruelty of his race, of that race which to this day disposes +of hundreds, nay! thousands, of its unwanted girl-children by the simple +measure of throwing them down a well specially dedicated to the purpose. + +“The weapon near your hand,” continued the Chinaman, imperturbably, “is +a product of the civilization of our near neighbors, the Japanese, a +race to whose courage I prostrate myself in meekness. It is the sword +of a samurai, Dr. Petrie. It is of very great age, and was, until an +unfortunate misunderstanding with myself led to the extinction of the +family, a treasured possession of a noble Japanese house...” + +The soft voice, into which an occasional sibilance crept, but which +never rose above a cool monotone, gradually was lashing me into fury, +and I could see the muscles moving in Smith’s jaws as he convulsively +clenched his teeth; whereby I knew that, impotent, he burned with a rage +at least as great as mine. But I did not speak, and did not move. + +“The ancient tradition of seppuku,” continued the Chinaman, “or +hara-kiri, still rules, as you know, in the great families of Japan. +There is a sacred ritual, and the samurai who dedicates himself to this +honorable end, must follow strictly the ritual. As a physician, the +exact nature of the ceremony might possibly interest you, Dr. Petrie, +but a technical account of the two incisions which the sacrificant +employs in his self-dismissal, might, on the other hand, bore Mr. +Nayland Smith. Therefore I will merely enlighten you upon one little +point, a minor one, but interesting to the student of human nature. +In short, even a samurai--and no braver race has ever honored the +world--sometimes hesitates to complete the operation. The weapon near to +your hand, my dear Dr. Petrie, is known as the Friend’s Sword. On such +occasions as we are discussing, a trusty friend is given the post--an +honored one of standing behind the brave man who offers himself to his +gods, and should the latter’s courage momentarily fail him, the friend +with the trusty blade (to which now I especially direct your attention) +diverts the hierophant’s mind from his digression, and rectifies his +temporary breach of etiquette by severing the cervical vertebrae of the +spinal column with the friendly blade--which you can reach quite easily, +Dr. Petrie, if you care to extend your hand.” + +Some dim perceptions of the truth was beginning to creep into my mind. +When I say a perception of the truth, I mean rather of some part of the +purpose of Dr. Fu-Manchu; of the whole horrible truth, of the scheme +which had been conceived by that mighty, evil man, I had no glimmering, +but I foresaw that a frightful ordeal was before us both. + +“That I hold you in high esteem,” continued Fu-Manchu, “is a fact which +must be apparent to you by this time, but in regard to your companion, I +entertain very different sentiments....” + +Always underlying the deliberate calm of the speaker, sometimes +showing itself in an unusually deep guttural, sometimes in an unusually +serpentine sibilance, lurked the frenzy of hatred which in the past had +revealed itself occasionally in wild outbursts. Momentarily I expected +such an outburst now, but it did not come. + +“One quality possessed by Mr. Nayland Smith,” resumed the Chinaman, “I +admire; I refer to his courage. I would wish that so courageous a man +should seek his own end, should voluntarily efface himself from the path +of that world-movement which he is powerless to check. In short, I would +have him show himself a samurai. Always his friend, you shall remain so +to the end, Dr. Petrie. I have arranged for this.” + +He struck lightly a little silver gong, dependent from the corner of +the table, whereupon, from the curtained doorway, there entered a short, +thickly built Burman whom I recognized for a dacoit. He wore a shoddy +blue suit, which had been made for a much larger man; but these things +claimed little of my attention, which automatically was directed to the +load beneath which the Burman labored. + +Upon his back he carried a sort of wire box rather less than six feet +long, some two feet high, and about two feet wide. In short, it was a +stout framework covered with fine wire-netting on the top, sides +and ends, but being open at the bottom. It seemed to be made in five +sections or to contain four sliding partitions which could be raised or +lowered at will. These were of wood, and in the bottom of each was cut +a little arch. The arches in the four partitions varied in size, so that +whereas the first was not more than five inches high, the fourth opened +almost to the wire roof of the box or cage; and a fifth, which was +but little higher than the first, was cut in the actual end of the +contrivance. + +So intent was I upon this device, the purpose of which I was wholly +unable to divine, that I directed the whole of my attention upon it. +Then, as the Burman paused in the doorway, resting a corner of the cage +upon the brilliant carpet, I glanced toward Fu-Manchu. He was watching +Nayland Smith, and revealing his irregular yellow teeth--the teeth of an +opium smoker--in the awful mirthless smile which I knew. + +“God!” whispered Smith--“the Six Gates!” + +“The knowledge of my beautiful country serves you well,” replied +Fu-Manchu gently. + +Instantly I looked to my friend... and every drop of blood seemed to +recede from my heart, leaving it cold in my breast. If I did not know +the purpose of the cage, obviously Smith knew it all too well. His +pallor had grown more marked, and although his gray eyes stared +defiantly at the Chinaman, I, who knew him, could read a deathly horror +in their depths. + +The dacoit, in obedience to a guttural order from Dr. Fu-Manchu, placed +the cage upon the carpet, completely covering Smith’s body, but leaving +his neck and head exposed. The seared and pock-marked face set in a sort +of placid leer, the dacoit adjusted the sliding partitions to Smith’s +recumbent form, and I saw the purpose of the graduated arches. They +were intended to divide a human body in just such fashion, and, as I +realized, were most cunningly shaped to that end. The whole of Smith’s +body lay now in the wire cage, each of the five compartments whereof was +shut off from its neighbor. + +The Burman stepped back and stood waiting in the doorway. Dr. Fu-Manchu, +removing his gaze from the face of my friend, directed it now upon me. + +“Mr. Commissioner Nayland Smith shall have the honor of acting as +hierophant, admitting himself to the Mysteries,” said Fu-Manchu softly, +“and you, Dr. Petrie, shall be the Friend.” + + + +CHAPTER XXIX. THE SIX GATES + +He glanced toward the Burman, who retired immediately, to re-enter a +moment later carrying a curious leather sack, in shape not unlike that +of a sakka or Arab water-carrier. Opening a little trap in the top +of the first compartment of the cage (that is, the compartment which +covered Smith’s bare feet and ankles) he inserted the neck of the sack, +then suddenly seized it by the bottom and shook it vigorously. Before +my horrified gaze four huge rats came tumbling out from the bag into the +cage! The dacoit snatched away the sack and snapped the shutter fast. A +moving mist obscured my sight, a mist through which I saw the green +eyes of Dr. Fu-Manchu fixed upon me, and through which, as from a great +distance, his voice, sunk to a snake-like hiss, came to my ears. + +“Cantonese rats, Dr. Petrie, the most ravenous in the world... they have +eaten nothing for nearly a week!” + +Then all became blurred as though a painter with a brush steeped in red +had smudged out the details of the picture. For an indefinite period, +which seemed like many minutes yet probably was only a few seconds, I +saw nothing and heard nothing; my sensory nerves were dulled entirely. +From this state I was awakened and brought back to the realities by a +sound which ever afterward I was doomed to associate with that ghastly +scene. + +This was the squealing of the rats. + +The red mist seemed to disperse at that, and with frightfully intense +interest, I began to study the awful torture to which Nayland Smith was +being subjected. The dacoit had disappeared, and Fu-Manchu placidly was +watching the four lean and hideous animals in the cage. As I also turned +my eyes in that direction, the rats overcame their temporary fear, and +began... + +“You have been good enough to notice,” said the Chinaman, his voice +still sunk in that sibilant whisper, “my partiality for dumb allies. You +have met my scorpions, my death-adders, my baboon-man. The uses of such +a playful little animal as a marmoset have never been fully appreciated +before, I think, but to an indiscretion of this last-named pet of mine, +I seem to remember that you owed something in the past, Dr. Petrie...” + +Nayland Smith stifled a deep groan. One rapid glance I ventured at his +face. It was a grayish hue, now, and dank with perspiration. His gaze +met mine. + +The rats had almost ceased squealing. + +“Much depends upon yourself, Doctor,” continued Fu-Manchu, slightly +raising his voice. “I credit Mr. Commissioner Nayland Smith with courage +high enough to sustain the raising of all the gates; but I estimate the +strength of your friendship highly, also, and predict that you will use +the sword of the samurai certainly not later than the time when I shall +raise the third gate....” + +A low shuddering sound, which I cannot hope to describe, but alas I can +never forget, broke from the lips of the tortured man. + +“In China,” resumed Fu-Manchu, “we call this quaint fancy the Six Gates +of joyful Wisdom. The first gate, by which the rats are admitted, is +called the Gate of joyous Hope; the second, the Gate of Mirthful Doubt. +The third gate is poetically named, the Gate of True Rapture, and the +fourth, the Gate of Gentle Sorrow. I once was honored in the friendship +of an exalted mandarin who sustained the course of joyful Wisdom to the +raising of the Fifth Gate (called the Gate of Sweet Desires) and the +admission of the twentieth rat. I esteem him almost equally with my +ancestors. The Sixth, or Gate Celestial--whereby a man enters into the +joy of Complete Understanding--I have dispensed with, here, substituting +a Japanese fancy of an antiquity nearly as great and honorable. The +introduction of this element of speculation, I count a happy thought, +and accordingly take pride to myself.” + +“The sword, Petrie!” whispered Smith. I should not have recognized his +voice, but he spoke quite evenly and steadily. “I rely upon you, old +man, to spare me the humiliation of asking mercy from that yellow +fiend!” + +My mind throughout this time had been gaining a sort of dreadful +clarity. I had avoided looking at the sword of hara-kiri, but my +thoughts had been leading me mercilessly up to the point at which we +were now arrived. No vestige of anger, of condemnation of the inhuman +being seated in the ebony chair, remained; that was past. Of all that +had gone before, and of what was to come in the future, I thought +nothing, knew nothing. Our long fight against the yellow group, our +encounters with the numberless creatures of Fu-Manchu, the dacoits--even +Karamaneh--were forgotten, blotted out. I saw nothing of the strange +appointments of that subterranean chamber; but face to face with the +supreme moment of a lifetime, I was alone with my poor friend--and God. + +The rats began squealing again. They were fighting... + +“Quick, Petrie! Quick, man! I am weakening....” + +I turned and took up the samurai sword. My hands were very hot and dry, +but perfectly steady, and I tested the edge of the heavy weapon upon my +left thumb-nail as quietly as one might test a razor blade. It was +as keen, this blade of ghastly history, as any razor ever wrought in +Sheffield. I seized the graven hilt, bent forward in my chair, and +raised the Friend’s Sword high above my head. With the heavy weapon +poised there, I looked into my friend’s eyes. They were feverishly +bright, but never in all my days, nor upon the many beds of suffering +which it had been my lot to visit, had I seen an expression like that +within them. + +“The raising of the First Gate is always a crucial moment,” came the +guttural voice of the Chinaman. Although I did not see him, and barely +heard his words, I was aware that he had stood up and was bending +forward over the lower end of the cage. + +“Now, Petrie! now! God bless you... and good-by...” + +From somewhere--somewhere remote--I heard a hoarse and animal-like cry, +followed by the sound of a heavy fall. I can scarcely bear to write of +that moment, for I had actually begun the downward sweep of the great +sword when that sound came--a faint Hope, speaking of aid where I had +thought no aid possible. + +How I contrived to divert the blade, I do not know to this day; but I +do know that its mighty sweep sheared a lock from Smith’s head and laid +bare the scalp. With the hilt in my quivering hands I saw the blade bite +deeply through the carpet and floor above Nayland Smith’s skull. There, +buried fully two inches in the woodwork, it stuck, and still clutching +the hilt, I looked to the right and across the room--I looked to the +curtained doorway. + +Fu-Manchu, with one long, claw-like hand upon the top of the First Gate, +was bending over the trap, but his brilliant green eyes were turned in +the same direction as my own--upon the curtained doorway. + +Upright within it, her beautiful face as pale as death, but her great +eyes blazing with a sort of splendid madness, stood Karamaneh! + +She looked, not at the tortured man, not at me, but fully at Dr. +Fu-Manchu. One hand clutched the trembling draperies; now she suddenly +raised the other, so that the jewels on her white arm glittered in the +light of the lamp above the door. She held my Browning pistol! Fu-Manchu +sprang upright, inhaling sibilantly, as Karamaneh pointed the pistol +point blank at his high skull and fired.... + +I saw a little red streak appear, up by the neutral colored hair, under +the black cap. I became as a detached intelligence, unlinked with the +corporeal, looking down upon a thing which for some reason I had never +thought to witness. + +Fu-Manchu threw up both arms, so that the sleeves of the green robe +fell back to the elbows. He clutched at his head, and the black cap +fell behind him. He began to utter short, guttural cries; he swayed +backward--to the right--to the left then lurched forward right across +the cage. There he lay, writhing, for a moment, his baneful eyes turned +up, revealing the whites; and the great gray rats, released, began +leaping about the room. Two shot like gray streaks past the slim figure +in the doorway, one darted behind the chair to which I was lashed, +and the fourth ran all around against the wall... Fu-Manchu, prostrate +across the overturned cage, lay still, his massive head sagging +downward. + +I experienced a mental repetition of my adventure in the earlier +evening--I was dropping, dropping, dropping into some bottomless pit ... +warm arms were about my neck; and burning kisses upon my lips. + + + +CHAPTER XXX. THE CALL OF THE EAST + +I seemed to haul myself back out of the pit of unconsciousness by the +aid of two little hands which clasped my own. I uttered a sigh that was +almost a sob, and opened my eyes. + +I was sitting in the big red-leathern armchair in my own study... and a +lovely but truly bizarre figure, in a harem dress, was kneeling on the +carpet at my feet; so that my first sight of the world was the sweetest +sight that the world had to offer me, the dark eyes of Karamaneh, with +tears trembling like jewels upon her lashes! + +I looked no further than that, heeded not if there were others in the +room beside we two, but, gripping the jewel-laden fingers in what must +have been a cruel clasp, I searched the depths of the glorious eyes +in ever growing wonder. What change had taken place in those limpid, +mysterious pools? Why was a wild madness growing up within me like a +flame? Why was the old longing returned, ten-thousandfold, to snatch +that pliant, exquisite shape to my breast? + +No word was spoken, but the spoken words of a thousand ages could not +have expressed one tithe of what was held in that silent communion. A +hand was laid hesitatingly on my shoulder. I tore my gaze away from the +lovely face so near to mine, and glanced up. + +Aziz stood at the back of my chair. + +“God is all merciful,” he said. “My sister is restored to us” (I loved +him for the plural); “and she remembers.” + +Those few words were enough; I understood now that this lovely girl, who +half knelt, half lay, at my feet, was not the evil, perverted creature +of Fu-Manchu whom we had gone out to arrest with the other vile servants +of the Chinese doctor, but was the old, beloved companion of two years +ago, the Karamaneh for whom I had sought long and wearily in Egypt, who +had been swallowed up and lost to me in that land of mystery. + +The loss of memory which Fu-Manchu had artificially induced was subject +to the same inexplicable laws which ordinarily rule in cases of amnesia. +The shock of her brave action that night had begun to effect a cure; the +sight of Aziz had completed it. + +Inspector Weymouth was standing by the writing-table. My mind cleared +rapidly now, and standing up, but without releasing the girl’s hands, so +that I drew her up beside me, I said: + +“Weymouth--where is--?” + +“He’s waiting to see you, Doctor,” replied the inspector. + +A pang, almost physical, struck at my heart. + +“Poor, dear old Smith!” I cried, with a break in my voice. + +Dr. Gray, a neighboring practitioner, appeared in the doorway at the +moment that I spoke the words. + +“It’s all right, Petrie,” he said, reassuringly; “I think we took it +in time. I have thoroughly cauterized the wounds, and granted that no +complication sets in, he’ll be on his feet again in a week or two.” + +I suppose I was in a condition closely bordering upon the hysterical. At +any rate, my behavior was extraordinary. I raised both my hands above my +head. + +“Thank God!” I cried at the top of my voice, “thank God!--thank God!” + +“Thank Him, indeed,” responded the musical voice of Aziz. He spoke with +all the passionate devoutness of the true Moslem. + +Everything, even Karamaneh was forgotten, and I started for the door as +though my life depended upon my speed. With one foot upon the landing, I +turned, looked back, and met the glance of Inspector Weymouth. + +“What have you done with--the body?” I asked. + +“We haven’t been able to get to it. That end of the vault collapsed two +minutes after we hauled you out!” + +As I write, now, of those strange days, already they seem remote and +unreal. But, where other and more dreadful memories already are grown +misty, the memory of that evening in my rooms remains clear-cut and +intimate. It marked a crisis in my life. + +During the days that immediately followed, whilst Smith was slowly +recovering from his hurts, I made my plans deliberately; I prepared to +cut myself off from old associations--prepared to exile myself, gladly; +how gladly I cannot hope to express in mere cold words. + +That my friend approved of my projects, I cannot truthfully state, but +his disapproval at least was not openly expressed. To Karamaneh I said +nothing of my plans, but her complete reliance in my powers to protect +her, now, from all harm, was at once pathetic and exquisite. + +Since, always, I have sought in these chronicles to confine myself to +the facts directly relating to the malignant activity of Dr. Fu-Manchu, +I shall abstain from burdening you with details of my private affairs. +As an instrument of the Chinese doctor, it has sometimes been my duty +to write of the beautiful Eastern girl; I cannot suppose that my readers +have any further curiosity respecting her from the moment that Fate +freed her from that awful servitude. Therefore, when I shall have +dealt with the episodes which marked our voyage to Egypt--I had opened +negotiations in regard to a practice in Cairo--I may honorably lay down +my pen. + +These episodes opened, dramatically, upon the second night of the voyage +from Marseilles. + + + +CHAPTER XXXI. “MY SHADOW LIES UPON YOU” + +I suppose I did not awake very readily. Following the nervous vigilance +of the past six months, my tired nerves, in the enjoyment of this +relaxation, were rapidly recuperating. I no longer feared to awake to +find a knife at my throat, no longer dreaded the darkness as a foe. + +So that the voice may have been calling (indeed, had been calling) for +some time, and of this I had been hazily conscious before finally I +awoke. Then, ere the new sense of security came to reassure me, the old +sense of impending harm set my heart leaping nervously. There is always +a certain physical panic attendant upon such awakening in the still +of night, especially in novel surroundings. Now, I sat up abruptly, +clutching at the rail of my berth and listening. + +There was a soft thudding on my cabin door, and a voice, low and urgent, +was crying my name. + +Through the open porthole the moonlight streamed into my room, and save +for a remote and soothing throb, inseparable from the progress of a +great steamship, nothing else disturbed the stillness; I might have +floated lonely upon the bosom of the Mediterranean. But there was the +drumming on the door again, and the urgent appeal: + +“Dr. Petrie! Dr. Petrie!” + +I threw off the bedclothes and stepped on to the floor of the cabin, +fumbling hastily for my slippers. A fear that something was amiss, that +some aftermath, some wraith of the dread Chinaman, was yet to come to +disturb our premature peace, began to haunt me. I threw open the door. + +Upon the gleaming deck, blackly outlined against a wondrous sky, stood +a man who wore a blue greatcoat over his pyjamas, and whose unstockinged +feet were thrust into red slippers. It was Platts, the Marconi operator. + +“I’m awfully sorry to disturb you, Dr. Petrie,” he said, “and I was even +less anxious to arouse your neighbor; but somebody seems to be trying to +get a message, presumably urgent, through to you.” + +“To me!” I cried. + +“I cannot make it out,” admitted Platts, running his fingers through +disheveled hair, “but I thought it better to arouse you. Will you come +up?” + +I turned without a word, slipped into my dressing-gown, and with Platts +passed aft along the deserted deck. The sea was as calm as a great +lake. Ahead, on the port bow, an angry flambeau burned redly beneath the +peaceful vault of the heavens. Platts nodded absently in the direction +of the weird flames. + +“Stromboli,” he said; “we shall be nearly through the Straits by +breakfast-time.” + +We mounted the narrow stair to the Marconi deck. At the table sat +Platts’ assistant with the Marconi attachment upon his head--an +apparatus which always set me thinking of the electric chair. + +“Have you got it?” demanded my companion as we entered the room. + +“It’s still coming through,” replied the other without moving, “but in +the same jerky fashion. Every time I get it, it seems to have gone back +to the beginning--just Dr. Petrie--Dr. Petrie.” + +He began to listen again for the elusive message. I turned to Platts. + +“Where is it being sent from?” I asked. + +Platts shook his head. + +“That’s the mystery,” he declared. “Look!”--and he pointed to the table; +“according to the Marconi chart, there’s a Messagerie boat due west +between us and Marseilles, and the homeward-bound P. & O. which we +passed this morning must be getting on that way also, by now. The Isis +is somewhere ahead, but I’ve spoken to all these, and the message comes +from none of them.” + +“Then it may come from Messina.” + +“It doesn’t come from Messina,” replied the man at the table, beginning +to write rapidly. + +Platts stepped forward and bent over the message which the other was +writing. + +“Here it is!” he cried, excitedly; “we’re getting it.” + +Stepping in turn to the table, I leaned over between the two and read +these words as the operator wrote them down: + +Dr. Petrie--my shadow... + +I drew a quick breath and gripped Platts’ shoulder harshly. His +assistant began fingering the instrument with irritation. + +“Lost it again!” he muttered. + +“This message,” I began... + +But again the pencil was traveling over the paper:--lies upon you +all... end of message. + +The operator stood up and unclasped the receivers from his ears. There, +high above the sleeping ship’s company, with the carpet of the blue +Mediterranean stretched indefinitely about us, we three stood looking at +one another. By virtue of a miracle of modern science, some one, divided +from me by mile upon mile of boundless ocean, had spoken--and had been +heard. + +“Is there no means of learning,” I said, “from whence this message +emanated?” + +Platts shook his head, perplexedly. + +“They gave no code word,” he said. “God knows who they were. It’s a +strange business and a strange message. Have you any sort of idea, Dr. +Petrie, respecting the identity of the sender?” + +I stared him hard in the face; an idea had mechanically entered my mind, +but one of which I did not choose to speak, since it was opposed to +human possibility. + +But, had I not seen with my own eyes the bloody streak across his +forehead as the shot fired by Karamaneh entered his high skull, had I +not known, so certainly as it is given to man to know, that the giant +intellect was no more, the mighty will impotent, I should have replied: + +“The message is from Dr. Fu-Manchu!” + +My reflections were rudely terminated and my sinister thoughts given new +stimulus, by a loud though muffled cry which reached me from somewhere +in the ship, below. Both my companions started as violently as I, +whereby I knew that the mystery of the wireless message had not been +without its effect upon their minds also. But whereas they paused in +doubt, I leaped from the room and almost threw myself down the ladder. + +It was Karamaneh who had uttered that cry of fear and horror! + +Although I could perceive no connection betwixt the strange message and +the cry in the night, intuitively I linked them, intuitively I knew that +my fears had been well-grounded; that the shadow of Fu-Manchu still lay +upon us. + +Karamaneh occupied a large stateroom aft on the main deck; so that I had +to descend from the upper deck on which my own room was situated to the +promenade deck, again to the main deck and thence proceed nearly the +whole length of the alleyway. + +Karamaneh and her brother, Aziz, who occupied a neighboring room, met +me, near the library. Karamaneh’s eyes were wide with fear; her peerless +coloring had fled, and she was white to the lips. Aziz, who wore +a dressing-gown thrown hastily over his night attire, had his arm +protectively about the girl’s shoulders. + +“The mummy!” she whispered tremulously--“the mummy!” + +There came a sound of opening doors, and several passengers, whom +Karamaneh cries had alarmed, appeared in various stages of undress. A +stewardess came running from the far end of the alleyway, and I found +time to wonder at my own speed; for, starting from the distant Marconi +deck, yet I had been the first to arrive upon the scene. + +Stacey, the ship’s doctor, was quartered at no great distance from +the spot, and he now joined the group. Anticipating the question which +trembled upon the lips of several of those about me: + +“Come to Dr. Stacey’s room,” I said, taking Karamaneh arm; “we will +give you something to enable you to sleep.” I turned to the group. “My +patient has had severe nerve trouble,” I explained, “and has developed +somnambulistic tendencies.” + +I declined the stewardess’ offer of assistance, with a slight shake of +the head, and shortly the four of us entered the doctor’s cabin, on +the deck above. Stacey carefully closed the door. He was an old +fellow student of mine, and already he knew much of the history of the +beautiful Eastern girl and her brother Aziz. + +“I fear there’s mischief afoot, Petrie,” he said. + +“Thanks to your presence of mind, the ship’s gossips need know nothing +of it.” + +I glanced at Karamaneh who, since the moment of my arrival had never +once removed her gaze from me; she remained in that state of passive +fear in which I had found her, the lovely face pallid; and she stared at +me fixedly in a childish, expressionless way which made me fear that the +shock to which she had been subjected, whatever its nature, had caused +a relapse into that strange condition of forgetfulness from which a +previous shock had aroused her. I could see that Stacey shared my view, +for: + +“Something has frightened you,” he said gently, seating himself on the +arm of Karamaneh’s chair and patting her hand as if to reassure her. +“Tell us all about it.” + +For the first time since our meeting that night, the girl turned her +eyes from me and glanced up at Stacey, a sudden warm blush stealing over +her face and throat and as quickly departing, to leave her even more +pale than before. She grasped Stacey’s hand in both her own--and looked +again at me. + +“Send for Mr. Nayland Smith without delay!” she said, and her sweet +voice was slightly tremulous. “He must be put on his guard!” + +I started up. + +“Why?” I said. “For God’s sake tell us what has happened!” + +Aziz who evidently was as anxious as myself for information, and who now +knelt at his sister’s feet looking at her with that strange love, which +was almost adoration, in his eyes, glanced back at me and nodded his +head rapidly. + +“Something”--Karamaneh paused, shuddering violently--“some dreadful +thing, like a mummy escaped from its tomb, came into my room to-night +through the porthole...” + +“Through the porthole?” echoed Stacey, amazedly. + +“Yes, yes, through the porthole! A creature tall and very, very thin. He +wore wrappings--yellow wrappings--swathed about his head, so that only +his eyes, his evil gleaming eyes, were visible.... From waist to knees +he was covered, also, but his body, his feet, and his legs were bare...” + +“Was he--?” I began... + +“He was a brown man, yes,”--Karamaneh divining my question, nodded, and +the shimmering cloud of her wonderful hair, hastily confined, burst +free and rippled about her shoulders. “A gaunt, fleshless brown man, who +bent, and writhed bony fingers--so!” + +“A thug!” I cried. + +“He--it--the mummy thing--would have strangled me if I had slept, for he +crouched over the berth--seeking--seeking...” + +I clenched my teeth convulsively. + +“But I was sitting up--” + +“With the light on?” interrupted Stacey in surprise. + +“No,” added Karamaneh; “the light was out.” She turned her eyes toward +me, as the wonderful blush overspread her face once more. “I was sitting +thinking. It all happened within a few seconds, and quite silently. As +the mummy crouched over the berth, I unlocked the door and leaped out +into the passage. I think I screamed; I did not mean to. Oh, Dr. +Stacey, there is not a moment to spare! Mr. Nayland Smith must be warned +immediately. Some horrible servant of Dr. Fu-Manchu is on the ship!” + + + +CHAPTER XXXII. THE TRAGEDY + +Nayland Smith leaned against the edge of the dressing-table, attired in +pyjamas. The little stateroom was hazy with smoke, and my friend gripped +the charred briar between his teeth and watched the blue-gray clouds +arising from the bowl, in an abstracted way. I knew that he was thinking +hard, and from the fact that he had exhibited no surprise when I had +related to him the particular’s of the attack upon Karamaneh I judged +that he had half anticipated something of the kind. Suddenly he stood +up, staring at me fixedly. + +“Your tact has saved the situation, Petrie,” he snapped. “It failed you +momentarily, though, when you proposed to me just now that we should +muster the lascars for inspection. Our game is to pretend that we know +nothing--that we believe Karamaneh to have had a bad dream.” + +“But, Smith,” I began-- + +“It would be useless, Petrie,” he interrupted me. “You cannot suppose +that I overlooked the possibility of some creature of the doctor’s being +among the lascars. I can assure you that not one of them answers to the +description of the midnight assailant. From the girl’s account we have +to look (discarding the idea of a revivified mummy) for a man of unusual +height--and there’s no lascar of unusual height on board; and from the +visible evidence, that he entered the stateroom through the porthole, we +have to look for a man more than normally thin. In a word, the servant +of Dr. Fu-Manchu who attempted the life of Karamaneh is either in hiding +on the ship, or, if visible, is disguised.” + +With his usual clarity of vision, Nayland Smith had visualized the facts +of the case; I passed in mental survey each one of the passengers, and +those of the crew whose appearances were familiar to me, with the result +that I had to admit the justice of my friend’s conclusions. Smith began +to pace the narrow strip of carpet between the dressing-table and the +door. Suddenly he began again. “From our knowledge of Fu-Manchu and of +the group surrounding him (and, don’t forget, surviving him)--we may +further assume that the wireless message was no gratuitous piece of +melodrama, but that it was directed to a definite end. Let us endeavor +to link up the chain a little. You occupy an upper deck berth; so do +I. Experience of the Chinaman has formed a habit in both of us; that of +sleeping with closed windows. Your port was fastened and so was my own. +Karamaneh is quartered on the main deck, and her brother’s stateroom +opens into the same alleyway. Since the ship is in the Straits of +Messina, and the glass set fair, the stewards have not closed the +portholes nightly at present. We know that that of Karamaneh’s stateroom +was open. Therefore, in any attempt upon our quartet, Karamaneh would +automatically be selected for the victim, since failing you or myself +she may be regarded as being the most obnoxious to Dr. Fu-Manchu.” + +I nodded comprehendingly. Smith’s capacity for throwing the white light +of reason into the darkest places often amazed me. + +“You may have noticed,” he continued, “that Karamaneh’s room is directly +below your own. In the event of any outcry, you would be sooner upon the +scene than I should, for instance, because I sleep on the opposite +side of the ship. This circumstance I take to be the explanation of the +wireless message, which, because of its hesitancy (a piece of ingenuity +very characteristic of the group), led to your being awakened and +invited up to the Marconi deck; in short, it gave the would-be assassin +a better chance of escaping before your arrival.” + +I watched my friend in growing wonder. The strange events, seemingly +having no link, took their places in the drama, and became well-ordered +episodes in a plot that only a criminal genius could have devised. As +I studied the keen, bronzed face, I realized to the full the stupendous +mental power of Dr. Fu-Manchu, measuring it by the criterion of Nayland +Smith’s. For the cunning Chinaman, in a sense, had foiled this brilliant +man before me, whereby, if by nought else, I might know him a master of +his evil art. + +“I regard the episode,” continued Smith, “as a posthumous attempt of +the doctor’s; a legacy of hate which may prove more disastrous than any +attempt made upon us by Fu-Manchu in life. Some fiendish member of the +murder group is on board the ship. We must, as always, meet guile with +guile. There must be no appeal to the captain, no public examination of +passengers and crew. One attempt has failed; I do not doubt that +others will be made. At present, you will enact the role of +physician-in-attendance upon Karamaneh, and will put it about for whom +it may interest that a slight return of her nervous trouble is causing +her to pass uneasy nights. I can safely leave this part of the case to +you, I think?” + +I nodded rapidly. + +“I haven’t troubled to make inquiries,” added Smith, “but I think it +probable that the regulation respecting closed ports will come into +operation immediately we have passed the Straits, or at any rate +immediately there is any likelihood of bad weather.” + +“You mean--” + +“I mean that no alteration should be made in our habits. A second +attempt along similar lines is to be apprehended--to-night. After that +we may begin to look out for a new danger.” + +“I pray we may avoid it,” I said fervently. + +As I entered the saloon for breakfast in the morning, I was subjected to +solicitous inquiries from Mrs. Prior, the gossip of the ship. Her room +adjoined Karamaneh’s and she had been one of the passengers aroused by +the girl’s cries in the night. Strictly adhering to my role, I explained +that my patient was threatened with a second nervous breakdown, and was +subject to vivid and disturbing dreams. One or two other inquiries I met +in the same way, ere escaping to the corner table reserved to us. + +That iron-bound code of conduct which rules the Anglo-Indian, in the +first days of the voyage had threatened to ostracize Karamaneh and Aziz, +by reason of the Eastern blood to which their brilliant but peculiar +type of beauty bore witness. Smith’s attitude, however--and, in a +Burmese commissioner, it constituted something of a law--had done much +to break down the barriers; the extraordinary beauty of the girl had +done the rest. So that now, far from finding themselves shunned, the +society of Karamaneh and her romantic-looking brother was universally +courted. The last inquiry that morning, respecting my interesting +patient, came from the bishop of Damascus, a benevolent old gentleman +whose ancestry was not wholly innocent of Oriental strains, and who sat +at a table immediately behind me. As I settled down to my porridge, he +turned his chair slightly and bent to my ear. + +“Mrs. Prior tells me that your charming friend was disturbed last +night,” he whispered. “She seems rather pale this morning; I sincerely +trust that she is suffering no ill-effect.” + +I swung around, with a smile. Owing to my carelessness, there was a +slight collision, and the poor bishop, who had been invalided to England +after typhoid, in order to undergo special treatment, suppressed an +exclamation of pain, although his fine dark eyes gleamed kindly upon me +through the pebbles of his gold-rimmed pince-nez. + +Indeed, despite his Eastern blood, he might have posed for a Sadler +picture, his small and refined features seeming out of place above the +bulky body. + +“Can you forgive my clumsiness,” I began-- + +But the bishop raised his small, slim fingered hand of old ivory hue, +deprecatingly. + +His system was supercharged with typhoid bacilli, and, as sometimes +occurs, the superfluous “bugs” had sought exit. He could only walk with +the aid of two stout sticks, and bent very much at that. His left leg +had been surgically scraped to the bone, and I appreciated the exquisite +torture to which my awkwardness had subjected him. But he would +entertain no apologies, pressing his inquiry respecting Karamaneh in the +kindly manner which had made him so deservedly popular on board. + +“Many thanks for your solicitude,” I said; “I have promised her sound +repose to-night, and since my professional reputation is at stake, I +shall see that she secures it.” + +In short, we were in pleasant company, and the day passed happily enough +and without notable event. Smith spent some considerable time with the +chief officer, wandering about unfrequented parts of the ship. I learned +later that he had explored the lascars’ quarters, the forecastle, the +engine-room, and had even descended to the stokehold; but this was done +so unostentatiously that it occasioned no comment. + +With the approach of evening, in place of that physical contentment +which usually heralds the dinner-hour, at sea, I experienced a fit of +the seemingly causeless apprehension which too often in the past had +harbingered the coming of grim events; which I had learnt to associate +with the nearing presence of one of Fu-Manchu’s death-agents. In view of +the facts, as I afterwards knew them to be, I cannot account for this. + +Yet, in an unexpected manner, my forebodings were realized. That night I +was destined to meet a sorrow surpassing any which my troubled life had +known. Even now I experience great difficulty in relating the matters +which befell, in speaking of the sense of irrevocable loss which came to +me. Briefly, then, at about ten minutes before the dining hour, whilst +all the passengers, myself included, were below, dressing, a faint cry +arose from somewhere aft on the upper deck--a cry which was swiftly +taken up by other voices, so that presently a deck steward echoed it +immediately outside my own stateroom: + +“Man overboard! Man overboard!” + +All my premonitions rallying in that one sickening moment, I sprang +out on the deck, half dressed as I was, and leaping past the boat which +swung nearly opposite my door, craned over the rail, looking astern. + +For a long time I could detect nothing unusual. The engine-room +telegraph was ringing--and the motion of the screws momentarily ceased; +then, in response to further ringing, recommenced, but so as to jar +the whole structure of the vessel; whereby I knew that the engines were +reversed. Peering intently into the wake of the ship, I was but dimly +aware of the ever growing turmoil around me, of the swift mustering of a +boat’s crew, of the shouted orders of the third-officer. Suddenly I saw +it--the sight which was to haunt me for succeeding days and nights. + +Half in the streak of the wake and half out of it, I perceived the +sleeve of a white jacket, and, near to it, a soft felt hat. The sleeve +rose up once into clear view, seemed to describe a half-circle in the +air then sink back again into the glassy swell of the water. Only the +hat remained floating upon the surface. + +By the evidence of the white sleeve alone I might have remained +unconvinced, although upon the voyage I had become familiar enough with +the drill shooting-jacket, but the presence of the gray felt hat was +almost conclusive. + +The man overboard was Nayland Smith! + +I cannot hope, writing now, to convey in any words at my command, a +sense, even remote, of the utter loneliness which in that dreadful +moment closed coldly down upon me. + +To spring overboard to the rescue was a natural impulse, but to have +obeyed it would have been worse than quixotic. In the first place, the +drowning man was close upon half a mile astern; in the second place, +others had seen the hat and the white coat as clearly as I; among them +the third-officer, standing upright in the stern of the boat--which, +with commendable promptitude had already been swung into the water. The +steamer was being put about, describing a wide arc around the little +boat dancing on the deep blue rollers.... + +Of the next hour, I cannot bear to write at all. Long as I had known +him, I was ignorant of my friend’s powers as a swimmer, but I judged +that he must have been a poor one from the fact that he had sunk +so rapidly in a calm sea. Except the hat, no trace of Nayland Smith +remained when the boat got to the spot. + + + +CHAPTER XXXIII. THE MUMMY + +Dinner was out of the question that night for all of us. Karamaneh who +had spoken no word, but, grasping my hands, had looked into my eyes--her +own glassy with unshed tears--and then stolen away to her cabin, had not +since reappeared. Seated upon my berth, I stared unseeingly before me, +upon a changed ship, a changed sea and sky upon another world. The poor +old bishop, my neighbor, had glanced in several times, as he hobbled by, +and his spectacles were unmistakably humid; but even he had vouchsafed +no word, realizing that my sorrow was too deep for such consolation. + +When at last I became capable of connected thought, I found myself faced +by a big problem. Should I place the facts of the matter, as I knew +them to be, before the captain? or could I hope to apprehend Fu-Manchu’s +servant by the methods suggested by my poor friend? That Smith’s death +was an accident, I did not believe for a moment; it was impossible not +to link it with the attempt upon Karamaneh. In my misery and doubt, I +determined to take counsel with Dr. Stacey. I stood up, and passed out +on to the deck. + +Those passengers whom I met on my way to his room regarded me in +respectful silence. By contrast, Stacey’s attitude surprised and even +annoyed me. + +“I’d be prepared to stake all I possess--although it’s not much,” he +said, “that this was not the work of your hidden enemy.” + +He blankly refused to give me his reasons for the statement and strongly +advised me to watch and wait but to make no communication to the +captain. + +At this hour I can look back and savor again something of the profound +dejection of that time. I could not face the passengers; I even avoided +Karamaneh and Aziz. I shut myself in my cabin and sat staring aimlessly +into the growing darkness. The steward knocked, once, inquiring if I +needed anything, but I dismissed him abruptly. So I passed the evening +and the greater part of the night. + +Those groups of promenaders who passed my door, invariably were +discussing my poor friend’s tragic end; but as the night wore on, the +deck grew empty, and I sat amid a silence that in my miserable state I +welcomed more than the presence of any friend, saving only the one whom +I should never welcome again. + +Since I had not counted the bells, to this day I have only the vaguest +idea respecting the time whereat the next incident occurred which it +is my duty to chronicle. Perhaps I was on the verge of falling asleep, +seated there as I was; at any rate, I could scarcely believe myself +awake, when, unheralded by any footsteps to indicate his coming, some +one who seemed to be crouching outside my stateroom, slightly raised +himself and peered in through the porthole--which I had not troubled to +close. + +He must have been a fairly tall man to have looked in at all, and +although his features were indistinguishable in the darkness, his +outline, which was clearly perceptible against the white boat beyond, +was unfamiliar to me. He seemed to have a small, and oddly swathed head, +and what I could make out of the gaunt neck and square shoulders in some +way suggested an unnatural thinness; in short, the smudgy silhouette in +the porthole was weirdly like that of a mummy! + +For some moments I stared at the apparition; then, rousing myself from +the apathy into which I had sunk, I stood up very quickly and stepped +across the room. As I did so the figure vanished, and when I threw open +the door and looked out upon the deck... the deck was wholly untenanted! + +I realized at once that it would be useless, even had I chosen the +course, to seek confirmation of what I had seen from the officer on +the bridge: my own berth, together with the one adjoining--that of the +bishop--was not visible from the bridge. + +For some time I stood in my doorway, wondering in a disinterested +fashion which now I cannot explain, if the hidden enemy had revealed +himself to me, or if disordered imagination had played me a trick. +Later, I was destined to know the truth of the matter, but when at last +I fell into a troubled sleep, that night, I was still in some doubt upon +the point. + +My state of mind when I awakened on the following day was indescribable; +I found it difficult to doubt that Nayland Smith would meet me on the +way to the bathroom as usual, with the cracked briar fuming between his +teeth. I felt myself almost compelled to pass around to his stateroom in +order to convince myself that he was not really there. The catastrophe +was still unreal to me, and the world a dream-world. Indeed I retain +scarcely any recollections of the traffic of that day, or of the days +that followed it until we reached Port Said. + +Two things only made any striking appeal to my dulled intelligence at +that time. These were: the aloof attitude of Dr. Stacey, who seemed +carefully to avoid me; and a curious circumstance which the second +officer mentioned in conversation one evening as we strolled up and down +the main deck together. + +“Either I was fast asleep at my post, Dr. Petrie,” he said, “or last +night, in the middle watch, some one or something came over the side of +the ship just aft the bridge, slipped across the deck, and disappeared.” + +I stared at him wonderingly. + +“Do you mean something that came up out of the sea?” I said. + +“Nothing could very well have come up out of the sea,” he replied, +smiling slightly, “so that it must have come up from the deck below.” + +“Was it a man?” + +“It looked like a man, and a fairly tall one, but he came and was gone +like a flash, and I saw no more of him up to the time I was relieved. +To tell you the truth, I did not report it because I thought I must have +been dozing; it’s a dead slow watch, and the navigation on this part of +the run is child’s play.” + +I was on the point of telling him what I had seen myself, two evenings +before, but for some reason I refrained from doing so, although I think +had I confided in him he would have abandoned the idea that what he had +seen was phantasmal; for the pair of us could not very well have been +dreaming. Some malignant presence haunted the ship; I could not doubt +this; yet I remained passive, sunk in a lethargy of sorrow. + +We were scheduled to reach Port Said at about eight o’clock in the +evening, but by reason of the delay occasioned so tragically, I learned +that in all probability we should not arrive earlier than midnight, +whilst passengers would not go ashore until the following morning. +Karamaneh who had been staring ahead all day, seeking a first glimpse +of her native land, was determined to remain up until the hour of our +arrival, but after dinner a notice was posted up that we should not be +in before two A.M. Even those passengers who were the most enthusiastic +thereupon determined to postpone, for a few hours, their first glimpse +of the land of the Pharaohs and even to forego the sight--one of the +strangest and most interesting in the world--of Port Said by night. + +For my own part, I confess that all the interest and hope with which +I had looked forward to our arrival, had left me, and often I detected +tears in the eyes of Karamaneh whereby I knew that the coldness in my +heart had manifested itself even to her. I had sustained the greatest +blow of my life, and not even the presence of so lovely a companion +could entirely recompense me for the loss of my dearest friend. + +The lights on the Egyptian shore were faintly visible when the last +group of stragglers on deck broke up. I had long since prevailed upon +Karamaneh to retire, and now, utterly sick at heart, I sought my own +stateroom, mechanically undressed, and turned in. + +It may, or may not be singular that I had neglected all precautions +since the night of the tragedy; I was not even conscious of a desire to +visit retribution upon our hidden enemy; in some strange fashion I took +it for granted that there would be no further attempts upon Karamaneh, +Aziz, or myself. I had not troubled to confirm Smith’s surmise +respecting the closing of the portholes; but I know now for a fact that, +whereas they had been closed from the time of our leaving the Straits +of Messina, to-night, in sight of the Egyptian coast, the regulation was +relaxed again. I cannot say if this is usual, but that it occurred on +this ship is a fact to which I can testify--a fact to which my attention +was to be drawn dramatically. + +The night was steamingly hot, and because I welcomed the circumstance +that my own port was widely opened, I reflected that those on the lower +decks might be open also. A faint sense of danger stirred within me; +indeed, I sat upright and was about to spring out of my berth when that +occurred which induced me to change my mind. + +All passengers had long since retired, and a midnight silence descended +upon the ship, for we were not yet close enough to port for any unusual +activities to have commenced. + +Clearly outlined in the open porthole there suddenly arose that same +grotesque silhouette which I had seen once before. + +Prompted by I know not what, I lay still and simulated heavy breathing; +for it was evident to me that I must be partly visible to the watcher, +so bright was the night. For ten--twenty--thirty seconds he studied me +in absolute silence, that gaunt thing so like a mummy; and, with my +eyes partly closed, I watched him, breathing heavily all the time. Then, +making no more noise than a cat, he moved away across the deck, and +I could judge of his height by the fact that his small, swathed head +remained visible almost to the time that he passed to the end of the +white boat which swung opposite my stateroom. + +In a moment I slipped quietly to the floor, crossed, and peered out +of the porthole; so that at last I had a clear view of the sinister +mummy-man. He was crouching under the bow of the boat, and attaching +to the white rails, below, a contrivance of a kind with which I was +not entirely unfamiliar. This was a thin ladder of silken rope, having +bamboo rungs, with two metal hooks for attaching it to any suitable +object. + +The one thus engaged was, as Karamaneh had declared, almost superhumanly +thin. His loins were swathed in a sort of linen garment, and his head +so bound about, turban fashion, that only his gleaming eyes remained +visible. The bare limbs and body were of a dusky yellow color, and, at +sight of him, I experienced a sudden nausea. + +My pistol was in my cabin-trunk, and to have found it in the dark, +without making a good deal of noise, would have been impossible. +Doubting how I should act, I stood watching the man with the swathed +head whilst he threw the end of the ladder over the side, crept past the +bow of the boat, and swung his gaunt body over the rail, exhibiting the +agility of an ape. One quick glance fore and aft he gave, then began to +swarm down the ladder: in which instant I knew his mission. + +With a choking cry, which forced itself unwilled from my lips, I tore at +the door, threw it open, and sprang across the deck. Plans, I had none, +and since I carried no instrument wherewith to sever the ladder, the +murderer might indeed have carried out his design for all that I could +have done to prevent him, were it not that another took a hand in the +game.... + +At the moment that the mummy-man--his head now on a level with the +deck--perceived me, he stopped dead. Coincident with his stopping, the +crack of a pistol shot sounded--from immediately beyond the boat. + +Uttering a sort of sobbing sound, the creature fell--then clutched, +with straining yellow fingers, at the rails, and, seemingly by dint of +a great effort, swarmed along aft some twenty feet, with incredible +swiftness and agility, and clambered onto the deck. + +A second shot cracked sharply; and a voice (God! was I mad!) cried: +“Hold him, Petrie!” + +Rigid with fearful astonishment I stood, as out from the boat above +me leaped a figure attired solely in shirt and trousers. The newcomer +leaped away in the wake of the mummy-man--who had vanished around the +corner by the smoke-room. Over his shoulder he cried back at me: + +“The bishop’s stateroom! See that no one enters!” + +I clutched at my head--which seemed to be fiery hot; I realized in my +own person the sensation of one who knows himself mad. + +For the man who pursued the mummy was Nayland Smith! + + * * * * * + +I stood in the bishop’s state-room, Nayland Smith, his gaunt face wet +with perspiration, beside me, handling certain odd looking objects which +littered the place, and lay about amid the discarded garments of the +absent cleric. + +“Pneumatic pads!” he snapped. “The man was a walking air-cushion!” He +gingerly fingered two strange rubber appliances. “For distending the +cheeks,” he muttered, dropping them disgustedly on the floor. “His hands +and wrists betrayed him, Petrie. He wore his cuff unusually long but +he could not entirely hide his bony wrists. To have watched him, whilst +remaining myself unseen, was next to impossible; hence my device +of tossing a dummy overboard, calculated to float for less than ten +minutes! It actually floated nearly fifteen, as a matter of fact, and I +had some horrible moments!” + +“Smith!” I said--“how could you submit me...” + +He clapped his hands on my shoulders. + +“My dear old chap--there was no other way, believe me. From that boat +I could see right into his stateroom, but, once in, I dare not leave +it--except late at night, stealthily! The second spotted me one night +and I thought the game was up, but evidently he didn’t report it.” + +“But you might have confided...” + +“Impossible! I’ll admit I nearly fell to the temptation that first +night; for I could see into your room as well as into his!” He slapped +me boisterously on the back, but his gray eyes were suspiciously moist. +“Dear old Petrie! Thank God for our friends! But you’d be the first to +admit, old man, that you’re a dead rotten actor! Your portrayal of grief +for the loss of a valued chum would not have convinced a soul on board! + +“Therefore I made use of Stacey, whose callous attitude was less +remarkable. Gad, Petrie! I nearly bagged our man the first night! +The elaborate plan--Marconi message to get you out of the way, and so +forth--had miscarried, and he knew the porthole trick would be useless +once we got into the open sea. He took a big chance. He discarded his +clerical guise and peeped into your room--you remember?--but you were +awake, and I made no move when he slipped back to his own cabin; I +wanted to take him red-handed.” + +“Have you any idea...” + +“Who he is? No more than where he is! Probably some creature of Dr. +Fu-Manchu specially chosen for the purpose; obviously a man of culture, +and probably of thug ancestry. I hit him--in the shoulder; but even then +he ran like a hare. We’ve searched the ship, without result. He may have +gone overboard and chanced the swim to shore...” + +We stepped out onto the deck. Around us was that unforgettable +scene--Port Said by night. The ship was barely moving through the glassy +water, now. Smith took my arm and we walked forward. Above us was the +mighty peace of Egypt’s sky ablaze with splendor; around and about us +moved the unique turmoil of the clearing-house of the Near East. + +“I would give much to know the real identity of the bishop of Damascus,” + muttered Smith. + +He stopped abruptly, snapping his teeth together and grasping my arm as +in a vise. Hard upon his words had followed the rattling clangor as the +great anchor was let go; but horribly intermingled with the metallic +roar there came to us such a fearful, inarticulate shrieking as to chill +one’s heart. + +The anchor plunged into the water of the harbor; the shrieking ceased. +Smith turned to me, and his face was tragic in the light of the arc lamp +swung hard by. + +“We shall never know,” he whispered. “God forgive him--he must be +in bloody tatters now. Petrie, the poor fool was hiding in the +chainlocker!” + +A little hand stole into mine. I turned quickly. Karamaneh stood beside +me. I placed my arm about her shoulders, drawing her close; and I blush +to relate that all else was forgotten. + +For a moment, heedless of the fearful turmoil forward, Nayland Smith +stood looking at us. Then he turned, with his rare smile, and walked +aft. + +“Perhaps you’re right, Petrie!” he said. + + + + + +End of Project Gutenberg’s The Return of Dr. Fu-Manchu, by Sax Rohmer + +*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 1183 *** |
